Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n church_n year_n young_a 140 3 6.1170 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A44087 The case of sees vacant by an unjust or uncanonical deprivation, stated in reply to a treatise entituled A vindication of the deprived bishops, &c. : together with the several other pamphlets lately publish'd as answers to the Baroccian treatise / by Humphry Hody ... Hody, Humphrey, 1659-1707. 1693 (1693) Wing H2339; ESTC R13783 282,258 245

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

argument_n propose_v by_o crakanthorp_n that_o he_o can_v not_o find_v the_o life_n of_o eutychius_n any_o where_o but_o in_o surius_n who_o he_o think_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v i_o only_o observe_v that_o as_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v as_o genuine_a by_o the_o 38._o learned_a so_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o as_o clear_v and_o manifest_a character_n of_o genuineness_n as_o any_o life_n extant_a concern_v the_o author_n of_o it_o i_o have_v this_o to_o add_v that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o eustratius_n who_o 171._o photius_n entitle_v presbyter_n of_o the_o great_a church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o who_o treatise_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a he_o mention_n which_o treatise_n be_v now_o extant_a publish_v by_o consensione_n l._n allatius_n that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o i_o gather_v from_o hence_o that_o eustratius_n the_o presbyter_n who_o write_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a not_o only_o discover_v as_o the_o worthy_a and_o learned_a dr._n lit._n cave_n have_v observe_v that_o he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o patriarch_n eutychius_n but_o express_v likewise_o a_o singular_a affection_n and_o veneration_n for_o he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o geat_v eutychius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n that_o holy_a and_o by_o i_o ever-to-be_a honour_a person_n chap._n xi_o s._n anastasius_n senior_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n justin_n junior_a though_o he_o never_o resign_v yet_o his_o successor_n gregory_n be_v own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n he_o continue_v patriarch_n till_o his_o death_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 23_o year_n the_o old_a patriarch_n anastasius_n be_v all_o the_o while_n live_v four_o saint_n among_o those_o that_o live_v at_o that_o time_n and_o communicate_v free_o with_o he_o s._n symeon_n stylites_n junior_a pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a s._n eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n s._n john_n nesteutes_fw-gr patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n pope_n gregory_n communicate_v with_o he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o declare_v anastasius_n deprivation_n to_o be_v invalid_a and_o look_n upon_o anastasius_n to_o be_v the_o rightful_a patriarch_n s._n anastasius_n though_o depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n and_o though_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n yet_o never_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v mention_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o anastasius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n justin_n the_o young_a it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o five_o year_n of_o iustin_n reign_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 570._o and_o that_o it_o be_v do_v bare_o by_o the_o emperor_n authority_n without_o any_o synod_n may_v easy_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o account_n which_o evagrius_n give_v of_o it_o 5._o justin_n say_v he_o turn_v anastasius_n out_o of_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n object_v against_o he_o that_o he_o have_v profuse_o squander_v away_o the_o sacred_a money_n upon_o thing_n not_o necessary_a and_o that_o he_o have_v likewise_o speak_v reproachful_o of_o he_o that_o be_v ask_v why_o he_o be_v so_o profuse_a of_o the_o sacred_a money_n he_o answer_v downright_o that_o therefore_o he_o have_v do_v it_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v take_v away_o by_o justin_n that_o common_a plague_n now_o it_o be_v say_v that_o therefore_o justin_n have_v a_o spite_n against_o anastasius_n because_o when_o he_o demand_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n of_o he_o when_o promote_v to_o the_o bishopric_n he_o refuse_v to_o give_v it_o he_o there_o be_v beside_o the_o abovementioned_a some_o other_o thing_n object_v against_o he_o by_o some_o that_o be_v willing_a as_o we_o may_v suppose_v to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n in_o his_o design_n the_o same_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o account_n we_o have_v in_o praece_v theophanes_n that_o he_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o his_o see_v through_o the_o emperor_n justin_n be_v displeasure_n because_o he_o have_v speak_v sharp_o against_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o have_v ordain_v john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o likewise_o against_o john_n of_o alexandria_n himself_o agreeable_o to_o this_o 25._o johannes_n diaconus_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v depose_v potestatibus_fw-la and_o pope_n 25._o gregory_n the_o great_a intimate_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v make_v patriarch_n by_o god_n but_o depose_v voluntate_fw-la hominum_fw-la though_o such_o be_v his_o deprivation_n and_o though_o as_o will_n by_o and_o by_o appear_v he_o never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n and_o though_o he_o be_v a_o great_a and_o admire_a bishop_n of_o that_o age_n so_o high_o esteem_v and_o revere_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o that_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n have_v send_v about_o to_o all_o bishop_n and_o require_v they_o to_o subscribe_v to_o his_o new-fangled_a heresy_n they_o all_o unanimous_o reply_v that_o they_o 39_o will_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o anastasius_n of_o antioch_n though_o i_o say_v he_o be_v so_o great_a and_o admire_v a_o person_n yet_o 1._o i_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o mention_n in_o any_o author_n of_o any_o disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n occasion_v by_o his_o deprivation_n 2._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o gregory_n abbot_n of_o mount_n sinai_n who_o succeed_v he_o continue_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n no_o less_o than_o 23_o or_o 24_o year_n and_o that_o too_o though_o anastasius_n be_v all_o that_o while_n live_v and_o be_v never_o deprive_v but_o die_v possess_v of_o the_o see_n and_o after_o his_o death_n anastasius_n be_v again_o restore_v nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n assign_v he_o 24_o year_n 24._o evagrius_n 23._o 3._o it_o appear_v from_o evagrius_n that_o gregory_n who_o accept_v of_o his_o see_n be_v a_o person_n of_o extraordinary_a worth_n and_o from_o thence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o great_a and_o the_o worthy_a man_n do_v not_o think_v it_o unlawful_a or_o a_o disparagement_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o see_v of_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n 4._o it_o appear_v likewise_o from_o evagrius_n that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o receive_v as_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n but_o be_v high_o belove_v and_o honour_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o evagrius_n say_v after_o anastasius_n say_v he_o gregory_n be_v prefer_v to_o the_o episcopal_a throne_n etc._n who_o glory_n according_a to_o the_o poet_n be_v spread_v far_o and_o near_o he_o be_v for_o understanding_n and_o virtue_n and_o all_o accomplishment_n a_o very_a extraordinary_a person_n and_o in_o any_o thing_n he_o undertake_v of_o a_o unconquerable_a resolution_n fearless_a and_o undaunted_a and_o never_o yield_a in_o any_o ill_a or_o unreasonable_a thing_n to_o the_o supreme_a power_n so_o liberal_a and_o magnificent_a he_o be_v that_o as_o often_o as_o he_o come_v abroad_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o person_n beside_o his_o own_o proper_a attendant_n be_v wont_a to_o wait_v on_o he_o and_o as_o soon_o as_o any_o perceive_v he_o or_o hear_v that_o he_o be_v a_o come_n they_o immediate_o flock_v in_o to_o attend_v he_o and_o so_o high_o be_v he_o honour_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d honour_n which_o be_v usual_o pay_v to_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v less_o than_o that_o which_o be_v pay_v to_o he_o evagrius_n add_v much_o more_o in_o his_o praise_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v admire_v not_o only_o by_o the_o christian_a but_o likewise_o by_o the_o persian_a emperor_n etc._n etc._n he_o 13._o tell_v we_o likewise_o how_o by_o his_o great_a authority_n he_o appease_v a_o whole_a army_n that_o mutinied_a against_o their_o commander_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o that_o army_n i_o be_o say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n a_o bishop_n and_o have_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n evagrius_n add_v that_o he_o appease_v god_n by_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n this_o action_n of_o the_o patriarch_n gregory_n be_v record_v likewise_o by_o another_o historian_n of_o that_o age_n 〈◊〉_d theophylactus_n simocatte_n philippicus_n say_v he_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o army_n gregory_z the_o then_z archbishop_n of_o antioch_n have_v reconcile_v it_o to_o he_o 5._o to_o this_o patriarch_n our_o historian_n evagrius_n be_v himself_o assessor_n or_o chancellor_n though_o it_o appear_v by_o that_o great_a character_n which_o he_o give_v the_o former_a patriarch_n anastasius_n that_o he_o high_o honour_v and_o esteem_v he_o yet_o he_o ready_o acknowlege_v the_o present_a possessor_n and_o act_n as_o 24._o assessor_n or_o chancellor_n under_o he_o as_o the_o true_a patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o one_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o it_o 6._o he_o be_v likewise_o acknowlege_v by_o s._n symeon_n stylites_n the_o latter_a of_o that_o name_n as_o appear_v from_o evagrius_n who_o speak_v of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d prophecy_n which_o
vir_fw-la laudabilis_fw-la as_o he_o be_v call_v by_o 41._o symmachus_n that_o mentis_fw-la sanctissimae_fw-la vir_fw-la as_o he_o be_v style_v by_o the_o emperor_n 94._o gratian_n that_o vir_fw-la egregius_fw-la &_o eruditus_fw-la in_o scripture_n that_o ecclesiae_fw-la doctor_n as_o he_o be_v term_v by_o finem_fw-la s._n jerome_n the_o most_o glorious_a damasus_n as_o 10._o theodoret_n call_v he_o he_o that_o be_v 22._o adorn_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o virtue_n and_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o defend_v all_o true_a apostolical_a doctrine_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o 65._o action_n as_o the_o same_o author_n say_v of_o he_o he_o in_o a_o word_n who_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n by_o a_o 〈◊〉_d law_n make_v the_o rule_n and_o standard_n of_o all_o orthodoxy_n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v object_v that_o though_o our_o damasus_n when_o he_o chief_o flourish_v be_v account_v so_o great_a and_o so_o worthy_a a_o man_n yet_o in_o felix_n time_n he_o may_v be_v but_o a_o young_a man_n and_o so_o his_o authority_n will_v be_v much_o less_o considerable_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n felix_n our_o damasus_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o nice_a young_a man_n that_o when_o felix_n be_v make_v pope_n he_o be_v above_o fifty_o year_n old_a and_o when_o felix_n die_v to_o who_o he_o have_v constant_o adhere_v he_o be_v above_o sixty_o and_o it_o be_v not_o full_a a_o year_n after_o felix_n death_n before_o he_o himself_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o popedom_n this_o be_v manifest_a from_o hence_o that_o after_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n viz._n upon_o liberius_n death_n in_o the_o year_n 366_o in_o the_o month_n of_o october_n he_o live_v according_a to_o those_o that_o say_v etc._n most_o but_o 18_o year_n and_o 2_o or_o 3_o month_n more_o true_o but_o year_n 16_o year_n and_o yet_o when_o he_o die_v he_o be_v as_o s._n jerome_n his_o familiar_a friend_n atte_v about_o he_o 80_o year_n of_o age._n he_o die_v as_o marcellinus_n come_v witness_n in_o the_o month_n of_o october_n when_o antonius_n and_o syagrius_n be_v consul_n that_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 382._o he_o be_v therefore_o 53_o year_n of_o age_n when_o felix_n be_v make_v bishop_n and_o when_o felix_n die_v he_o be_v in_o the_o 63d_o year_n of_o his_o age._n felix_n as_o be_v above_o say_v be_v promote_v in_o the_o room_n of_o liberius_n in_o the_o year_n 355._o and_o be_v again_o turn_v out_o upon_o the_o restauration_n of_o liberius_n somewhat_o less_o than_o two_o year_n after_o eight_o year_n as_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v he_o live_v after_o that_o and_o die_v on_o the_o 10_o of_o the_o kalend_n of_o december_n when_o valentinian_n and_o valens_n be_v consul_n i._n e._n in_o the_o year_n 365._o liberius_n survive_v felix_n but_o about_o 10_o month_n for_o he_o die_v on_o the_o 8_o of_o the_o kalend_n of_o october_n in_o the_o consulship_n of_o gratian_n and_o dagalaiphus_n i._n e._n the_o year_n follow_v this_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o presbyter_n marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n i_o need_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o consute_n that_o story_n which_o we_o find_v in_o two_o fabulous_a life_n of_o pope_n damasus_n that_o when_o pope_n liberius_n be_v banish_v he_o constitute_v our_o damasus_n his_o vicar_n to_o supply_v his_o place_n in_o his_o absence_n and_o that_o he_o according_o do_v so_o till_o liberius_n be_v restore_v if_o that_o be_v true_a than_o he_o do_v not_o adhere_v to_o pope_n felix_n but_o it_o need_v but_o very_o little_a judgement_n be_v there_o no_o good_a authority_n for_o what_o we_o have_v here_o lay_v down_o to_o discover_v the_o falseness_n of_o that_o monkish_a story_n and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v how_o little_a the_o writer_n of_o it_o know_v relate_v to_o liberius_n banishment_n i_o shall_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o so_o injudicious_a as_o to_o hearken_v to_o it_o i_o must_v here_o add_v that_o though_o our_o author_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o people_n aversion_n to_o felix_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v use_n of_o general_a term_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o the_o people_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v understand_v strict_o but_o only_o of_o the_o much_o great_a part._n that_o felix_n have_v a_o very_a considerable_a party_n not_o only_o among_o the_o clergy_n but_o likewise_o among_o the_o laity_n seem_v to_o i_o very_o probable_a from_o hence_o that_o within_o a_o year_n after_o felix_n death_n when_o vrsinus_n or_o vrsicinus_n be_v choose_v pope_n by_o the_o liberians_n and_o damasus_n by_o the_o felicians_n there_o arise_v a_o great_a contention_n not_o only_o among_o the_o clergy_n but_o likewise_o among_o the_o laity_n and_o damasus_n then_o have_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n on_o his_o side_n and_o many_o of_o they_o be_v so_o zealous_a and_o violent_a for_o he_o as_o that_o much_o blood_n be_v spill_v this_o schism_n and_o contention_n seem_v to_o have_v proceed_v partly_o from_o some_o former_a heat_n and_o siding_n of_o the_o people_n i_o know_v that_o the_o presbyter_n marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n say_v that_o damasus_n have_v bribe_v the_o people_n with_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n but_o that_o be_v only_o a_o malicious_a suggestion_n such_o as_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o person_n so_o much_o his_o enemy_n i_o shall_v not_o take_v notice_n that_o in_o the_o pontifical_a it_o be_v say_v that_o when_o felix_n be_v martyr_a there_o suffer_v with_o he_o multi_fw-la clerici_fw-la &_o fideles_fw-la not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o clergy_n but_o likewise_o many_o other_o of_o the_o faithful_a the_o story_n of_o his_o be_v put_v to_o death_n be_v too_o uncertain_a much_o more_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o yet_o at_o least_o this_o appear_v from_o that_o story_n that_o among_o the_o ancient_n it_o be_v believe_v that_o many_o of_o the_o laity_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o clergy_n adhere_v to_o he_o have_v thus_o show_v what_o reception_n pope_n felix_n meet_v with_o at_o rome_n i_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o though_o he_o be_v make_v bishop_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o unjust_o depose_a liberius_n yet_o first_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o his_o own_o district_n communicate_v with_o he_o and_o receive_v he_o as_o their_o metropolitan_a second_o his_o ordination_n be_v receive_v and_o allow_v of_o as_o valid_a by_o even_o his_o adversary_n liberius_n three_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n have_v all_o along_o own_a he_o as_o one_o of_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o can_v be_v expect_v but_o that_o he_o who_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n in_o the_o place_n of_o one_o depose_v for_o oppose_v the_o arian_n and_o likewise_o communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n shall_v by_o many_o be_v both_o thought_n and_o speak_v ill_o of_o but_o whoever_o they_o be_v that_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o our_o pope_n felix_n because_o they_o think_v he_o a_o arian_n or_o because_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n or_o because_o he_o communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n their_o authority_n and_o judgement_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o we_o he_o be_v think_v as_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v not_o only_o by_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n but_o likewise_o by_o s._n athanasius_n a_o arian_n so_o 37._o socrates_n call_v he_o express_o though_o he_o mention_n with_o all_o that_o other_o affirm_v he_o be_v orthodox_n so_o likewise_o s._n jerome_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n though_o indeed_o in_o sophronius_n greek_a translation_n of_o that_o work_n the_o word_n arian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v from_o this_o ill_a opinion_n that_o many_o have_v conceive_v of_o he_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o some_o there_o be_v this_o false_a story_n raise_v concern_v he_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v put_v by_o the_o arian_n into_o liberius_n place_n he_o be_v punish_v by_o god_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o eye_n and_o afterward_o die_v of_o a_o pestilential_a disease_n this_o story_n be_v tell_v of_o he_o by_o the_o author_n of_o that_o life_n of_o s._n athanasius_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o 1445._o photius_n hence_o likewise_o it_o be_v that_o the_o writer_n of_o one_o of_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n damasius_fw-la who_o another_o follow_v in_o his_o fiction_n invent_v that_o story_n above_o mention_v that_o liberius_n make_v damasus_n his_o vicar_n to_o oppose_v the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o arian_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o banishment_n he_o have_v read_v in_o s._n jerome_n that_o felix_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n acacius_n so_o he_o himself_o write_v and_o thence_o he_o conclude_v that_o felix_n himself_o be_v a_o arian_n thence_o
that_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v which_o be_v add_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o book_n briccius_n be_v call_v the_o four_o and_o eustochius_n who_o succeed_v upon_o his_o death_n be_v call_v the_o five_o bishop_n from_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o see_v yet_o throughout_o the_o whole_a history_n justinian_n and_o armentius_n be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n for_o 14._o perpetuus_n who_o succeed_v eustochius_n be_v call_v the_o five_o bishop_n after_o s._n martin_n virus_n who_o be_v the_o second_o from_o eustochius_n be_v call_v the_o 26._o seven_o bishop_n after_o s._n martin_n to_o he_o succeed_v licinius_n and_o he_o he_o call_v the_o ordinatur_fw-la 8_o bishop_n after_o s._n martin_n now_o unless_o justinian_n and_o armentius_n be_v include_v in_o the_o number_n perpetuus_n will_v be_v only_o the_o 3d._a bishop_n after_o s._n martin_n virus_n only_o the_o 5_o and_o licinius_n only_o the_o 6_o three_o i_o observe_v that_o s._n briccius_n though_o he_o be_v so_o unjust_o depose_v by_o bare_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o people_n and_o though_o he_o never_o have_v give_v up_o his_o right_n but_o have_v all_o along_o endeavour_v to_o recover_v it_o yet_o he_o himself_o own_a armentius_n to_o be_v a_o true_a bishop_n of_o tours_n and_o call_v he_o his_o brother_n the_o historian_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o he_o be_v send_v back_o to_o tours_n by_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v restore_v as_o he_o lie_v at_o some_o distance_n from_o the_o city_n armentius_n die_v and_o the_o death_n of_o armentius_n be_v reveal_v to_o he_o by_o a_o vision_n he_o thus_o cry_v out_o to_o his_o company_n arise_v quick_o that_o we_o may_v go_v to_o the_o funeral_n of_o occurramus_fw-la our_o brother_n the_o bishop_n of_o tours_n §_o 3._o in_o the_o year_n 452._o juvenalis_n be_v patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n theodosius_n a_o certain_a turbulent_a monk_n and_o a_o adversary_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v 56._o by_o the_o slaughter_n of_o a_o great_a many_o person_n get_v himself_o to_o be_v ordain_v patriarch_n of_o that_o see_v though_o juvenalis_n be_v still_o alive_a and_o have_v never_o be_v depose_v by_o any_o synod_n nor_o yet_o by_o the_o emperor_n himself_o yet_o the_o only_a objection_n that_o the_o 54._o venerable_a the_o great_a and_o orthodox_n abbot_n s._n euthymius_n make_v against_o he_o when_o urge_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o as_o patriarch_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o he_o be_v this_o that_o he_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o many_o murder_n and_o be_v likewise_o a_o heretic_n 56._o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o i_o shall_v approve_v of_o his_o murder_n and_o ill_a opinion_n concern_v juvenalis_n that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v synodical_o deprive_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o acknowledge_v a_o successor_n not_o a_o word_n theodosius_n have_v ordain_v many_o bishop_n in_o the_o room_n of_o those_o orthodox_n bishop_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o return_v from_o the_o council_n and_o all_o place_n that_o be_v vacant_a he_o fill_v up_o after_o some_o little_a time_n he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o juvenalis_n be_v restore_v be_v command_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o depose_v all_o those_o bishop_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v but_o though_o he_o have_v usurp_v the_o see_v after_o so_o cit_fw-la barbarous_a a_o manner_n and_o though_o they_o that_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o he_o be_v as_o uncanonical_o ordain_v as_o possible_o they_o can_v be_v yet_o 〈◊〉_d they_o who_o be_v orthodox_n be_v still_o account_v true_a bishop_n and_o if_o their_o predecessor_n be_v dead_a be_v still_o continue_v in_o their_o see_z this_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o 〈◊〉_d theodotus_n bishop_n of_o joppa_n who_o though_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o he_o yet_o continue_v long_o after_o that_o time_n bishop_n of_o that_o see_v and_o be_v own_v as_o such_o by_o the_o orthodox_n §_o 4._o timotheus_n aelurus_n a_o notorious_a eutychian_a heretic_n who_o as_o such_o have_v be_v former_o condemn_v by_o a_o synod_n 8._o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 457._o the_o one_a of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n make_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n by_o the_o people_n of_o that_o city_n proterius_n the_o orthodox_n bishop_n be_v then_o ibidem_fw-la live_v and_o in_o full_a possession_n of_o the_o see_v and_o ordain_v by_o only_o two_o bishop_n and_o those_o beside_o heretic_n and_o as_o such_o judicial_o condemn_v be_v make_v bishop_n after_o this_o irregular_a manner_n his_o predecessor_n proterius_n be_v in_o a_o little_a time_n after_o murder_v as_o it_o be_v think_v by_o his_o procurement_n after_o some_o time_n he_o be_v 11._o depose_v and_o banish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o a_o orthodox_n person_n timotheus_n salofaciolus_n be_v constitute_v his_o successor_n after_o 18_o year_n salofaciolus_n be_v 4._o depose_v by_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o heretical_a usurper_n basiliscus_n and_o aelurus_n be_v recall_v from_o banishment_n be_v again_o make_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n whilst_o he_o be_v at_o constantinople_n with_o the_o emperor_n basiliscus_n acatius_n the_o stout_a and_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o enter_v into_o any_o of_o his_o church_n and_o why_o not_o not_o because_o he_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o basiliscus_n but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o murderer_n so_o pope_n simplicius_n in_o one_o of_o his_o permiseris_fw-la epistle_n to_o acacius_n thy_o constancy_n say_v he_o be_v praise_v worthy_a both_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o in_o we_o in_o that_o thou_o will_v not_o suffer_v that_o condemn_a person_n to_o enter_v into_o any_o of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n but_o likewise_o because_o he_o be_v a_o parricide_n §_o 5._o in_o the_o year_n 482._o johannes_n talaias_n or_o tabennesiotes_n a_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n and_o petrus_n mongus_n one_o who_o have_v be_v former_o depose_v from_o that_o see_v for_o be_v a_o eutychian_a but_o have_v now_o subscribe_v to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o have_v be_v absolve_v by_o acacius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v make_v bishop_n in_o his_o stead_n the_o reason_n why_o talaias_n be_v depose_v be_v this_o there_o have_v be_v great_a sedition_n raise_v at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o emperor_n have_v be_v force_v to_o deprive_v that_o church_n and_o people_n of_o their_o ancient_a right_n of_o election_n and_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o constitute_v their_o patriarch_n himself_o the_o patriarch_n timotheus_n salofaciolus_n be_v again_o restore_v to_o that_o see_v send_v 12._o talaias_n his_o oeconomus_fw-la or_o the_o treasurer_n of_o the_o church_n to_o constantinople_n to_o the_o emperor_n to_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o restore_v he_o and_o withal_o to_o beg_v of_o he_o that_o after_o he_o salofaciolus_n death_n the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n may_v have_v a_o free_a election_n this_o the_o emperor_n grant_v but_o suspect_v that_o talaias_n might_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o negotiate_v this_o affair_n that_o so_o he_o himself_o may_v obtain_v the_o dignity_n he_o make_v he_o take_v a_o oath_n that_o he_o himself_o will_v never_o endeavour_v to_o obtain_v it_o talaias_n return_v home_n with_o the_o emperor_n grant_n be_v after_o the_o death_n of_o salofaciolus_n choose_a patriarch_n by_o the_o orthodox_n party_n and_o the_o emperor_n dislike_a the_o election_n depose_v he_o as_o guilty_a of_o perjury_n that_o talaias_n be_v real_o guilty_a he_o himself_o will_v never_o acknowledge_v allege_v that_o it_o be_v only_o because_o he_o be_v orthodox_n that_o he_o be_v depose_v but_o guilty_a or_o not_o guilty_a depose_v he_o be_v and_o that_o too_o by_o bare_o the_o emperor_n authority_n as_o appear_v from_o etc._n evagrius_n 18._o liberatus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n adducendis_fw-la gelasius_n that_o he_o have_v be_v canonical_o choose_v and_o ordain_v and_o to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n full_o confirm_v by_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o alexandria_n be_v apparent_a from_o a_o epistle_n of_o pope_n etc._n simplicius_n to_o acacius_n as_o likewise_o from_o acacii_n liberatus_n diaconus_fw-la who_o tell_v we_o beside_o that_o he_o have_v send_v about_o his_o synodical_a epistle_n and_o that_o after_o he_o be_v eject_v he_o never_o surrender_v up_o his_o right_n but_o still_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o see_v of_o alexandria_n be_v what_o i_o need_v not_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v his_o flee_v to_o rome_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v restore_v by_o his_o mean_n be_v notorious_a
this_o error_n thou_o be_v fall_v do_v not_o lie_v as_o thou_o be_v thou_o have_v sin_v do_v not_o continue_v to_o do_v so_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n expect_v thou_o she_o desire_v to_o embrace_v thou_o a_o penitent_n and_o a_o convert_n to_o her_o faith_n she_o cry_v out_o to_o thou_o by_o we_o come_v to_o i_o all_o you_o that_o labour_n etc._n etc._n god_n will_v not_o most_o honour_a brother_n the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o live_v these_o thing_n i_o together_o with_o a_o synod_n have_v write_v to_o thou_o conjure_v thou_o by_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n that_o thou_o preach_v these_o thing_n and_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n that_o so_o our_o faith_n may_v remain_v vnadulterate_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o all_o those_o bishop_n who_o epistle_n to_o gnapheus_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o four_o tom_n of_o the_o council_n not_o one_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o be_v invalid_o constitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o calendion_n heresy_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o object_n that_o the_o only_a thing_n they_o exhort_v he_o to_o forsake_v 2._o quintianus_n asculanus_n 〈◊〉_d thou_o proceed_v say_v he_o in_o thy_o heretical_a doctrine_n not_o withstand_v the_o admonition_n of_o many_o bishop_n and_o particular_o pope_n felix_n who_o have_v exhort_v thou_o to_o forsake_v they_o and_o to_o preach_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n who_o can_v bear_v with_o thou_o whilst_o thou_o thus_o perverte_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n let_v thy_o liturgy_n be_v as_o that_o of_o the_o orthodox_n be_v without_o the_o addition_n of_o that_o clause_n who_o waste_v crucify_a for_o we_o and_o that_o punishment_n which_o be_v intend_v for_o thou_o shall_v be_v slopt_z if_o thou_o do_v not_o do_v so_o there_o will_v be_v send_v thou_o from_o pope_n fellix_fw-la a_o deprivation_n 3._o justinus_n siculus_n etc._n cease_v say_v he_o from_o this_o wickedness_n and_o then_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o those_o that_o be_v more_o ignorant_a lest_o our_o pope_n felix_n shall_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n pass_v sentence_n upon_o thou_o receive_v my_o admonition_n as_o the_o admonition_n of_o a_o brother_n extinguish_v the_o pride_n of_o heretic_n and_o become_v a_o pastor_n to_o thy_o sheep_n not_o a_o wolf_n etc._n etc._n 4._o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d walk_v say_v he_o and_o lead_v thy_o flock_n in_o the_o high_a way_n in_o which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n walk_v that_o thou_o may_v be_v a_o true_a highpriest_n of_o god_n 5._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n antheon_n bishop_n of_o arsinoe_n and_o faustus_n of_o apollonius_n etc._n i_o have_v hear_v belove_v say_v the_o latter_a from_o many_o bishop_n that_o thou_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o in_o all_o place_n they_o talk_v of_o it_o i_o therefore_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o inquire_v of_o thou_o thyself_o whether_o it_o be_v real_o so_o etc._n etc._n 6._o pamphilus_n bishop_n of_o abydus_n 〈◊〉_d this_o reprehension_n i_o send_v thou_o that_o return_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n thou_o may_v enjoy_v the_o dignity_n of_o thy_o throne_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o return_v to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n i_o will_v excommunicate_v thou_o 7._o ascelepiades_fw-la bishop_n of_o trallium_n 〈◊〉_d the_o whole_a world_n be_v offend_v at_o thy_o addition_n to_o the_o trishagium_fw-la and_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deserve_o excite_v to_o pronounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o thou_o give_v we_o i_o beseech_v thou_o some_o little_a signification_n of_o thy_o be_v orthodox_n etc._n etc._n the_o only_a person_n that_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o his_o be_v irregular_o constitute_v be_v flaccianus_n rhodopensis_fw-la and_o of_o he_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o when_o he_o say_v that_o gnapheus_n be_v irregular_o constitute_v he_o have_v any_o respect_n to_o the_o deprivation_n of_o calendion_n for_o gnapheus_n have_v be_v former_o depose_v from_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n as_o a_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o since_o he_o have_v never_o be_v absolve_v by_o the_o church_n he_o may_v well_o be_v say_v even_o upon_o that_o account_n to_o have_v be_v irregular_o promote_v and_o to_o praedicantes_fw-la this_o flaccianus_n seem_v to_o allude_v whatever_o be_v his_o meaning_n he_o only_o bare_o mention_n it_o do_v not_o offer_v it_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o the_o orthodox_n do_v not_o or_o ought_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o he_o he_o insist_o like_o the_o rest_n upon_o only_a his_o be_v a_o heretic_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o these_o epistle_n of_o pope_n felix_n quintianus_n justinus_n acacius_n antheon_n faustus_n pamphilus_n and_o asclepiades_n to_o petrus_n gnapheus_n be_v look_v upon_o by_o trisagio_fw-it some_o learned_a man_n not_o to_o be_v genuine_a but_o i_o likewise_o know_v that_o that_o opinion_n be_v by_o siculo_fw-la other_o oppose_v however_o it_o be_v this_o at_o least_o be_v apparent_a that_o he_o or_o they_o who_o write_v they_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v very_o ancient_a do_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o communicate_v with_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n provide_v he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n or_o if_o he_o be_v will_v leave_v his_o heresy_n and_o come_v over_o to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o here_o i_o must_v observe_v that_o the_o epistle_n last_o quote_v viz._n that_o of_o flaccianus_n be_v condemn_v as_o spurious_a by_o even_o cit_fw-la those_o who_o will_v not_o yield_v that_o the_o rest_n shall_v be_v think_v so_o chap._n vi_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n anastasius_n his_o successor_n timotheus_n be_v acknowlege_v by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o profess_v that_o the_o deprivation_n of_o macedonius_n be_v unjust_a and_o can_v never_o be_v induce_v by_o any_o terror_n to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o viz_o by_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n elias_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o studium_fw-la the_o orthodox_n people_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o great_a abbot_n of_o palestine_n s._n sabas_n and_o s._n theodosius_n and_o by_o all_o palestine_n in_o general_a at_o that_o time_n exceed_o flourish_v for_o its_o zealous_a profession_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n the_o calumny_n of_o the_o vindicator_n concern_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o patriarch_n flavianus_n and_o elias_n confute_v timotheus_n not_o know_v to_o they_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n when_o they_o communicate_v with_o he_o they_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n in_o the_o year_n cedrenus_n 511_o macedontus_fw-la the_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n anastasius_n and_o that_o because_o he_o be_v orthodox_n and_o refuse_v to_o condemn_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n though_o macedonius_n be_v so_o unjust_o depose_v yet_o timotheus_n who_o the_o emperor_n have_v constitute_v in_o his_o place_n be_v receive_v and_o acknowlege_v as_o true_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n by_o all_o those_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o example_n produce_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n evagrius_n say_v that_o the_o patriarch_n macedonius_n 32._o go_v away_o private_o from_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o celer_n the_o captain_n of_o the_o emperor_n guard_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o guard_n be_v command_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o carry_v he_o away_o into_o banishment_n persuade_v he_o to_o go_v away_o with_o he_o peaceable_o and_o private_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o a_o tumult_n that_o the_o patriarch_n do_v not_o resign_v but_o be_v force_v to_o go_v away_o and_o look_v upon_o himself_o still_o as_o the_o rightful_a patriarch_n be_v apparent_a from_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o several_a author_n and_o evagrius_n himself_o in_o another_o place_n affirm_v that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d eject_v the_o emperor_n say_v &c_n theodorus_n lector_fw-la suppose_v that_o macedonius_n if_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v judge_v will_v as_o innocent_a have_v be_v defend_v by_o the_o people_n send_v he_o away_o by_o force_n to_o chalcedon_n by_o night_n and_o command_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v from_o thence_o to_o eucha●●a_n and_o the_o next_o day_n he_o make_v one_o timotheus_n patriarch_n in_o his_o stead_n anastasius_n the_o emperor_n say_v facit_fw-la victor_n tununensis_n depose_v macedonius_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n by_o violence_n and_o send_v he_o away_o into_o banishment_n because_o he_o refuse_v to_o condemn_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o in_o his_o stead_n he_o make_v the_o
the_o case_n of_o see_v vacant_a by_o a_o unjust_a or_o uncanonical_a deprivation_n state_v in_o reply_n to_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o deprive_v bishop_n etc._n etc._n together_o with_o the_o several_a other_o pamphlet_n late_o publish_v as_o answer_n to_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n by_o humphrey_n hody_n d._n d._n fellow_n of_o wadh._n coll._n in_o oxford_n abstineamus_fw-la nos_fw-la à_fw-la convitiis_fw-la ne_fw-la tempus_fw-la inaniter_fw-la impendamus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la agitur_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la potius_fw-la advertamus_fw-la s._n aug._n ep._n ad_fw-la pascentium_n comitem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la vincimur_fw-la quando_fw-la offeruntur_fw-la nobis_fw-la meliora_fw-la sed_fw-la instruimur_fw-la maximè_fw-la in_o his_o qua_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la unitatem_fw-la pertinent_a &_o spei_fw-la &_o fidei_fw-la nostra_fw-la veritatem_fw-la s._n cypr._n london_n print_v by_o i._n h._n for_o henry_n mortlock_n at_o the_o phoenix_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdcxciii_o imprimatur_fw-la geo._n royse_n r._n r_o mo_z in_o christo_fw-la patri_fw-la ac_fw-la d_o no_o d_o no_o johanni_n archiep._n cantuar_n à_fw-la sacris_fw-la dome_v decemb._n 1._o 1692._o to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n john_n by_o divine_a providence_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_z his_o grace_n primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n this_o treatise_n be_v design_v for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n as_o at_o present_a establish_v i_o presume_v to_o make_v your_o grace_n this_o humble_a offer_n of_o it_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o subject_n deserve_v a_o more_o able_a manager_n but_o my_o lord_n that_o favourable_a acceptance_n with_o which_o you_o be_v please_v to_o honour_v the_o baroccian_a treatise_n have_v encourage_v i_o to_o hope_n that_o your_o grace_n will_v likewise_o be_v please_v to_o accept_v of_o these_o endeavour_n and_o to_o excuse_v and_o pardon_v the_o defect_n of_o your_o grace'smost_a dutiful_a servant_n humphrey_n hody_n bestow_v upon_o it_o they_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v by_o their_o practice_n that_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o strength_n if_o to_o be_v oppose_v by_o seven_o several_a answerer_n the_o latter_a not_o satisfy_v with_o what_o the_o former_a have_v urge_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o strength_n in_o a_o treatise_n we_o may_v still_o believe_v and_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o find_v it_o out_o at_o this_o juncture_n have_v something_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o it_o i_o presume_v the_o reader_n will_v expect_v i_o shall_v give_v he_o some_o account_n of_o these_o seven_o several_a answer_n which_o have_v be_v publish_v against_o it_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o the_o title_n of_o they_o in_o the_o same_o order_n as_o they_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n 1._o the_o oxford_n antiquity_n examine_v etc._n etc._n 2._o a_o answer_n to_o a_o treatise_n out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n translate_v from_o a_o ancient_a greek_n ms._n in_o the_o public_a library_n at_o oxford_n by_o humphrey_n hody_n b._n d._n etc._n etc._n 3._o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la humfredum_fw-la hody_n etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr tractatu_fw-la è_fw-la scriniis_fw-la baroccianis_fw-la bibliothecae_fw-la bodleianae_n eruto_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la illo_fw-la nuper_fw-la edito_fw-la conscripta_fw-la 4._o a_o far_a account_n of_o the_o baroccian_a ms._n late_o publish_v at_o oxford_n 5._o reflection_n on_o the_o greek_a ms_n translate_v by_o mr_n hody_n this_o be_v not_o print_v but_o be_v put_v into_o my_o hand_n in_o a_o ms._n 6._o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o deprive_v bishop_n assert_v their_o spiritual_a right_n against_o a_o lay-deprivation_n against_o the_o charge_n of_o schism_n etc._n etc._n these_o six_o be_v profess_o and_o entire_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n but_o the_o author_n of_o this_o last_o mention_v be_v i_o know_v not_o how_o so_o unhappy_a as_o to_o mistake_v the_o question_n he_o write_v against_o the_o treatise_n as_o if_o the_o design_n of_o it_o be_v to_o vindicate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n in_o deprive_v bishop_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o design_n of_o the_o treatise_n neither_o be_v it_o my_o design_n in_o publish_v it_o and_o from_o this_o strange_a mistake_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o what_o that_o author_n say_v be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n 7._o unity_n of_o priesthood_n necessary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o the_o oxford_n ms._n and_o the_o preface_n annex_v the_o vindication_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n in_o deprive_v a_o bishop_n for_o political_a crime_n i_o reserve_v for_o a_o particular_a treatise_n my_o business_n at_o present_a be_v to_o manage_v the_o last_o proposition_n that_o advance_v by_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n in_o reply_n to_o these_o several_a answer_n i_o here_o present_a our_o adversary_n with_o a_o impartial_a history_n of_o the_o church_n behaviour_n throughout_o all_o age_n under_o bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o depose_v by_o a_o lay_v or_o otherwise_o invalid_n sentence_n i_o grant_v at_o present_a that_o all_o lay-deprivations_a be_v invalid_a i_o suppose_v the_o worst_a in_o all_o case_n suppose_v the_o deprivation_n be_v not_o only_o uncanonical_a but_o also_o unjust_a suppose_v the_o depriver_n not_o only_o a_o layman_n but_o double_o unqualify_v by_o be_v likewise_o a_o heretisk_n suppose_v beside_o that_o the_o eject_v bishop_n be_v deprive_v for_o adhere_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o oppose_a vice_n or_o heresy_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o i_o assert_v that_o if_o he_o be_v deprive_v by_o a_o power_n irresistible_a a_o submission_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n if_o otherwise_o unexceptionable_a be_v lawful_a and_o warrant_v by_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n it_o be_v not_o my_o design_n to_o detain_v my_o reader_n long_o in_o a_o preface_n only_o one_o or_o two_o thing_n i_o desire_v of_o he_o if_o any_o thing_n here_o in_o this_o treatise_n seem_v long_o and_o tedious_a to_o he_o i_o desire_v he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o my_o design_n be_v to_o make_v this_o discourse_n as_o perfect_a as_o i_o can_v that_o so_o if_o possible_a it_o may_v put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o controversy_n and_o if_o our_o adversary_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o publish_v a_o reply_n to_o what_o be_v here_o write_v i_o desire_v he_o will_v serious_o compare_v and_o weigh_v one_o treatise_n with_o the_o other_o consider_v if_o the_o main_a and_o more_o substantial_a part_n of_o this_o treatise_n be_v answer_v then_o judge_v for_o himself_o and_o not_o expect_v that_o of_o course_n there_o must_v be_v another_o reply_n as_o i_o be_o not_o so_o vain_a as_o to_o think_v myself_o clear_a from_o error_n so_o neither_o be_o i_o conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o have_v be_v so_o careless_a and_o indiligent_a as_o to_o think_v i_o be_o often_o mistake_v i_o mean_v in_o thing_n material_a i_o hate_v everlasting_a wrangle_n and_o a_o adversary_n that_o cavil_v and_o except_v against_o thing_n not_o material_a i_o shall_v think_v deserve_v a_o reply_n as_o little_a as_o one_o that_o rail_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a i_o know_v to_o persuade_v our_o adversary_n that_o the_o history_n i_o here_o present_v they_o be_v what_o i_o call_v it_o impartial_a but_o this_o assurance_n i_o give_v they_o i_o have_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o i_o myself_o believe_v that_o may_v be_v perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v but_o you_o have_v not_o write_v all_o that_o you_o believe_v you_o have_v not_o tell_v all_o you_o know_v why_o true_o as_o to_o that_o i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o answer_v since_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n be_v so_o extreme_o different_a as_o that_o some_o have_v fansy_v that_o the_o canon_n i_o omit_v when_o i_o publish_v the_o buroccian_a treatise_n be_v real_o a_o part_n of_o that_o treatise_n and_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v publish_v with_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o impertinent_a but_o what_o some_o or_o other_o may_v fancy_n i_o ought_v to_o have_v mention_v i_o can_v promise_v but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v more_o canon_n but_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v suspect_v that_o though_o i_o have_v produce_v many_o instance_n for_o the_o cause_n i_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v there_o be_v other_o as_o good_a and_o as_o many_o that_o make_v against_o we_o which_o i_o have_v design_o conceal_v i_o shall_v here_o make_v this_o solemn_a declaration_n that_o if_o any_o of_o our_o adversary_n i_o speak_v to_o all_o in_o general_n but_o my_o eye_n be_v particular_o upon_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n can_v produce_v i_o any_o one_o single_a instance_n from_o the_o time_n of_o aaron_n the_o first_o highpriest_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o this_o very_a day_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n disow_v by_o the_o jew_n or_o a_o
bishop_n disow_v by_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n if_o they_o can_v show_v i_o i_o say_v any_o one_o single_a instance_n i_o shall_v own_v myself_o oblige_v for_o the_o instruction_n i_o assure_v my_o reader_n that_o after_o a_o nice_a and_o very_o search_v i_o know_v not_o one_o shall_v our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o produce_v such_o a_o example_n as_o i_o think_v they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a it_o will_v advantage_v their_o cause_n but_o little_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o late_a age_n since_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n but_o if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o single_a example_n how_o rash_o have_v they_o act_v who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n on_o such_o a_o account_n i_o conclude_v in_o the_o word_n of_o drusius_n which_o i_o here_o make_v my_o own_o scripsi_fw-la haec_fw-la animo_fw-la juvandi_fw-la non_fw-la laedendi_fw-la si_fw-mi laesi_fw-la quempiam_fw-la jam_fw-la i_o poenitet_fw-la si_fw-mi offendi_fw-la pias_fw-la aures_fw-la monitus_fw-la lubenter_fw-la mutabo_fw-la si_fw-mi erravi_fw-la uspiam_fw-la monstretur_fw-la mihi_fw-la error_n non_fw-la ero_fw-la pertinax_fw-la ☞_o pag._n 5._o lin_v 40._o whatsoever_o be_v notorious_o repugnant_a to_o the_o church_n interest_n so_o as_o to_o be_v necessary_o productive_a of_o very_o great_a evil_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v oblige_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sin_n to_o act_v according_a to_o it_o lest_o that_o proposition_n shall_v be_v misunderstand_v after_o the_o word_n of_o very_o great_a evil_n add_v i_o speak_v of_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o the_o reasonableness_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n if_o otherwise_o unexceptionable_a though_o the_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o or_o invalid_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n demonstrate_v objection_n answer_v no_o obligation_n to_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n unreasonable_o allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n the_o vindicator_n notion_n of_o heresy_n not_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n page_n 1._o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v all_o along_o own_a and_o receive_v as_o true_a high-priest_n a_o account_n of_o all_o those_o high-priest_n from_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n solomon_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o instance_n of_o abiathar_n and_o zadok_v nice_o examine_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o god_n approbation_n of_o such_o high-priest_n a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o we_o page_n 16._o chap._n iii_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n acknowlege_v and_o communicate_v with_o those_o high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n as_o true_a high-priest_n mr._n selden_n conjecture_n that_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o highpriest_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o the_o highpriest_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o sanhedrin_n confute_v a_o reply_n to_o a_o answer_n of_o our_o adversary_n concern_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o jew_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n page_n 33._o chap._n iu._n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n submit_v all_o along_o to_o such_o bishop_n if_o account_v orthodox_n as_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n though_o never_o so_o unjust_o no_o example_n either_o for_o or_o against_o we_o in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n all_o the_o emperor_n be_v then_o heathen_n the_o example_n of_o felix_n ii_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o liberius_n unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n and_o against_o liberius_n consent_n yet_o he_o be_v own_a by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n by_o the_o roman_a clergy_n among_o they_o by_o the_o famous_a damasus_n who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n he_o be_v own_a as_o metropolitan_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o rome_n his_o ordination_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o valid_a by_o even_o his_o adversary_n liberius_n he_o have_v be_v all_o along_o own_a by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n and_o true_a pope_n page_n 40._o chap._n v._n the_o catholic_n of_o alexandria_n reject_v lucius_n because_o he_o be_v a_o arian_n not_o because_o his_o predecessor_n peter_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n our_o adversary_n doctrine_n not_o know_v to_o the_o say_v peter_n §_o 1._o s._n briccius_n of_o tours_n depose_v by_o the_o people_n yet_o justinian_n and_o armentius_n his_o successor_n be_v own_a as_o true_a bishop_n of_o tours_n armentius_n be_v own_a as_o true_a bishop_n by_o s._n briccius_n himself_o though_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n but_o have_v always_o claim_v it_o §_o 2._o s._n euthymius_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o theodosius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o have_v imbrue_v his_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o person_n not_o because_o the_o patriarch_n juvenalis_n who_o see_v he_o have_v usurp_v be_v still_o live_v theodolius_n ordination_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o valid_a §_o 3._o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o timotheus_n aelurus_n not_o because_o he_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o timotheus_n salofaciolus_n unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o heretical_a usurper_n basiliscus_n but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o parricide_n §_o 4._o jo._n talaias_n the_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n though_o he_o still_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o see_v yet_o petrus_n mongus_n his_o successor_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n by_o acacius_n and_o fravitas_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o martyrius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n that_o they_o who_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o mongus_n viz._n the_o western_a bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o dardania_n etc._n etc._n do_v it_o only_o because_o they_o think_v he_o a_o heretic_n that_o euphemius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n communicate_v with_o he_o till_o he_o find_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n than_o forsake_v his_o communion_n pope_n simplicius_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o talaias_n be_v to_o be_v depose_v be_v well_o enough_o satisfy_v till_o he_o understand_v that_o mongus_n who_o he_o account_v a_o heretic_n be_v design_v for_o his_o successor_n whether_o orthodox_n bishop_n unjust_o eject_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v restore_v or_o new_a orthodox_n bishop_n be_v create_v he_o value_v not_o he_o only_o desire_v that_o they_o that_o be_v make_v bishop_n shall_v be_v orthodox_n pope_n felix_n iii_o not_o at_o all_o concern_v for_o talaias_n be_v deprive_v without_o a_o synod_n only_o dislike_v that_o one_o who_o he_o account_v a_o heretic_n be_v constitute_v in_o his_o place_n §_o 5._o calendion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n without_o any_o synod_n the_o orthodox_n bishop_n viz._n pope_n felix_n iii_o quintianus_n asculanus_n justinus_n siculus_n acacius_n constantinopolitanus_n antheon_n arsinoite_n faustus_n apolloniates_n pamphilus_n abydensis_n asclepiades_fw-la of_o trallium_n etc._n etc._n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o his_o successor_n petrus_n gnapheus_n only_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o his_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o unsynodical_o depose_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o communicate_v with_o he_o as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n if_o he_o will_v but_o forsake_v his_o heresy_n page_n 57_o chap._n vi_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n anastasius_n his_o successor_n timotheus_n be_v acknowlege_v by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o profess_v that_o the_o deprivation_n of_o macedonius_n be_v unjust_a and_o can_v never_o be_v induce_v by_o any_o terror_n to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o viz._n by_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n elias_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o studium_fw-la the_o orthodox_n people_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o great_a abbot_n of_o palestine_n s._n sabas_n and_o s._n theodosius_n and_o by_o all_o palestine_n in_o general_a at_o that_o time_n exceed_o flourish_v for_o its_o zealous_a profession_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n the_o calumny_n of_o the_o vindicator_n concern_v the_o apostasy_n of_o
the_o patriarch_n flavianus_n and_o elias_n confute_v timotheus_n not_o know_v to_o they_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n when_o they_o communicate_v with_o he_o they_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n page_n 70._o chap._n vii_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n his_o successor_n severus_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o orthodox_n only_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n elias_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o say_a emperor_n his_o successor_n john_n be_v immediate_o acknowlege_v by_o all_o the_o people_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o hate_v he_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o palestine_n particular_o the_o two_o great_a abbot_n s._n sabas_n and_o s._n theodosius_n so_o famous_a for_o their_o vndauntedness_n and_o sanctity_n by_o johannes_n cappadox_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n ever_o since_o those_o time_n the_o testimony_n of_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n out_o of_o a_o manuscript_n the_o old_a patriarch_n elias_n though_o so_o tyrannical_o deprive_v for_o adhere_v to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n continue_v however_o to_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v his_o successor_n page_n 81._o chap._n viii_o s._n silverius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o belisarius_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n general_n his_o successor_n vigilius_n though_o put_v into_o his_o place_n so_o deprive_v though_o constitute_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o belisarius_n against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o though_o silverius_n never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o the_o 5_o general_n council_n and_o by_o all_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a pope_n he_o be_v general_o own_a whilst_o silverius_n himself_o be_v live_v baronius_n conjecture_n concern_v his_o be_v again_o ordain_v after_o silverius_n death_n confute_v though_o for_o some_o time_n he_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o orthodox_n who_o communicate_v with_o he_o page_n 90._o chap._n ix_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n his_o successor_n eustochius_n be_v own_a as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n by_o the_o five_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n after_o some_o time_n eustochius_n himself_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o macarius_n be_v restore_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n principle_n either_o eustochius_n or_o macarius_n after_o his_o restauration_n be_v no_o true_a patriarch_n yet_o the_o church_n receive_v both_o page_n 97._o chap._n x._o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o emp._n justinian_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o his_o heresy_n john_n surname_v scholasticus_n be_v make_v patriarch_n in_o his_o room_n after_o john_n be_v consecrate_v patriarch_n eutychius_n be_v condemn_v by_o a_o assembly_n that_o consist_v as_o well_o of_o lay_v lord_n as_o bishop_n not_o only_o of_o ecclesiastic_n as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v he_o actual_o lay_v claim_v to_o the_o see_v despise_v the_o sentence_n of_o his_o judge_n as_o null_n and_o invalid_a because_o they_o proceed_v unjust_o and_o uncanonical_o against_o he_o and_o excommunicate_v they_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o his_o successor_n because_o he_o prove_v orthodox_n be_v receive_v and_o own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n he_o continue_v in_o the_o see_v near_o 13_o year_n near_o 12_o year_n under_o justin_n the_o young_a a_o orthodox_n emp._n he_o be_v own_a by_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n eutychius_n be_v exceed_o belove_v john_n a_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v consecrate_v by_o he_o for_o what_o reason_n anastasius_n patriarch_n by_o antioch_n reprove_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o be_v ordain_v by_o he_o anastasius_n do_v not_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o he_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n though_o eutychius_n look_v upon_o his_o deprivation_n as_o absolute_o invalid_a and_o though_o he_o never_o resign_v but_o account_v himself_o still_o the_o rightful_a patriarch_n yet_o he_o live_v quiet_o and_o never_o endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n dr._n crakanthorp_n opinion_n that_o eutychius_n be_v depose_v for_o be_v a_o heretic_n confute_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o life_n of_o eutychius_n often_o quote_v in_o this_o chapter_n vindicate_v against_o the_o same_o author_n page_n 101._o chap._n xi_o s._n anastasius_n senior_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n justin_n junior_a though_o he_o never_o resign_v yet_o his_o successor_n gregory_n be_v own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n he_o continue_v patriarch_n till_o his_o death_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 23_o year_n the_o old_a patriarch_n anastasius_n be_v all_o the_o while_n live_v four_o saint_n among_o those_o that_o live_v at_o that_o time_n and_o communicate_v free_o with_o he_o s._n symeon_n stylites_n junior_a pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a s._n eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n s._n john_n nesteutes_fw-gr patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n pope_n gregory_n communicate_v with_o he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o declare_v anastasius_n deprivation_n to_o be_v invalid_a and_o look_n upon_o anastasius_n to_o be_v the_o rightful_a patriarch_n s._n anastasius_n though_o depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n and_o though_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n yet_o never_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 121._o chap._n xii_o s._n martin_n pope_n of_o rome_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n and_o banish_v by_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n constans_n though_o he_o never_o resign_v yet_o eugenius_n be_v choose_v his_o successor_n by_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o be_v zealous_a assertor_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o have_v likewise_o a_o great_a love_n for_o s._n martin_n eugenius_n be_v receive_v and_o own_a by_o all_o as_o a_o true_a pope_n and_o have_v be_v honour_v all_o along_o by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n s._n martin_n himself_o own_v he_o as_o a_o true_a pope_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o he_o as_o such_o page_n 128._o chap._n xiii_o callinicus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n justinianus_n rhinotmetus_n his_o successor_n cyrus_n be_v receive_v as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n §_o 1._o so_o likewise_o be_v nicetas_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o patriarch_n constantine_n depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n copronymus_n §_o 2._o page_n 135._o chap._n fourteen_o a_o account_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o photius_n and_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n photius_n who_o be_v put_v into_o ignatius_n place_n when_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n no_o such_o person_n as_o his_o enemy_n report_v he_o by_o how_o great_a a_o party_n he_o be_v receive_v the_o reason_n why_o some_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o because_o he_o be_v so_o constitute_v as_o because_o he_o be_v a_o neophytus_n and_o be_v beside_o ordain_v by_o a_o bishop_n excommunicate_v and_o in_o their_o judgement_n stand_v himself_o excommunicate_v at_o that_o time_n ignatius_n profess_v that_o if_o photius_n have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o excommunicate_v person_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o consecration_n he_o will_v willing_o have_v yield_v to_o he_o ignatius_n value_v the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v the_o lay-power_n the_o vindicator_n in_o a_o error_n concern_v that_o matter_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o council_n call_v the_o first_o and_o second_o a_o new_a account_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o title_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n call_v by_o p._n nicholas_n against_o photius_n photius_n after_o he_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_a council_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n yet_o his_o successor_n stephen_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n page_n 139._o chap._n xv._n nicolaus_n mysticus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n not_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v but_o by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o wise._n §_o 1._o joseph_n bishop_n of_o brixia_n in_o italy_n depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o king_n besengarius_fw-la yet_o his_o successor_n antony_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n particular_o by_o the_o pope_n the_o synod_n of_o augspurg_n and_o ravenna_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o see_v many_o year_n §_o 2._o basilius_n camaterus_n and_o nicetas_n muntanes_n patriarch_n of_o
it_o be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v that_o this_o be_v a_o maxim_n of_o the_o ancient_n we_o shall_v easy_o find_v if_o we_o please_v but_o to_o cast_v our_o eye_n back_o upon_o their_o time_n and_o consider_v those_o method_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o all_o manner_n of_o case_n they_o always_o prefer_v the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n to_o all_o other_o thing_n the_o essential_o of_o religion_n except_v there_o be_v no_o custom_n or_o law_n of_o the_o church_n so_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a but_o what_o they_o ready_o sacrifice_v whensoever_o necessity_n require_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o it_o if_o the_o exact_a observation_n of_o the_o receive_a custom_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o like_a to_o conduce_v to_o the_o present_a peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o it_o they_o be_v ready_o supersede_v and_o necessity_n and_o convenience_n become_v the_o only_a legislator_n to_o prefer_v a_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o welfare_n and_o prosperity_n of_o it_o and_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o say_v of_o a_o father_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o law_n of_o necessity_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o theological_a pedantry_n which_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o consider_v like_o true_o wise_a man_n the_o circumstance_n and_o the_o exigency_n of_o the_o time_n and_o they_o know_v that_o those_o custom_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v proper_a in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n can_v never_o indispensable_o oblige_v in_o time_n of_o a_o different_a complexion_n to_o prevent_v or_o to_o heal_v the_o disease_n of_o the_o church_n they_o act_v like_o philosopher_n not_o like_o empiric_n consider_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o this_o and_o that_o particular_a case_n what_o be_v true_o expedient_a not_o what_o have_v be_v prescribe_v when_o the_o symptom_n be_v not_o the_o same_o though_o of_o all_o the_o general_a council_n there_o be_v none_o so_o revere_v as_o the_o nicene_n and_o though_o among_o all_o the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n there_o be_v none_o so_o religious_o and_o so_o universal_o observe_v as_o that_o which_o make_v it_o unlawful_a for_o any_o one_o city_n to_o have_v two_o bishop_n and_o although_o that_o have_v always_o be_v a_o novatianum_fw-la rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n long_a before_o the_o time_n of_o that_o council_n yet_o s._n augustine_n and_o all_o the_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o africa_n think_v fit_a to_o 16._o propose_v that_o expedient_a to_o their_o adversary_n the_o donatist_n for_o the_o put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o schism_n and_o the_o same_o expedient_a be_v 3._o propose_v arian_n by_o meletius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o anti-bishop_n paulinus_n for_o the_o put_v a_o end_n to_o that_o schism_n that_o be_v between_o they_o thus_o when_o queen_n chrodielde_n of_o france_n have_v make_v the_o bishop_n theodorus_n and_o proculus_n archbishop_n of_o tours_n 31._o together_o the_o whole_a gallican_n church_n because_o they_o be_v both_o very_a old_a and_o so_o the_o inconvenience_n of_o suffer_v it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o of_o oppose_v the_o queen_n very_o free_o acknowedged_a '_o they_o and_o though_o it_o be_v express_o forbid_v by_o the_o aforesaid_a 4._o council_n of_o nice_a and_o likewise_o by_o the_o more_o ancient_a canon_n or_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n that_o one_o bishop_n alone_o shall_v ordain_v another_o and_o three_o at_o least_o be_v positive_o require_v by_o that_o council_n how_o great_a soever_o the_o necessity_n may_v be_v though_o it_o be_v moreover_o unlawful_a for_o any_o one_o to_o be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o a_o bishop_n so_o ordain_v be_v declare_v 6._o by_o that_o council_n uncapable_a of_o govern_v as_o a_o bishop_n yet_o when_o siderius_n have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o palebisca_n by_o 67._o the_o single_a bishop_n of_o cyrene_n a_o bold_a and_o resolute_a man_n one_o who_o often_o transgress_v the_o order_n of_o his_o superior_n and_o that_o too_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o s._n athanasius_n the_o metropolitan_a because_o of_o the_o badness_n of_o the_o time_n it_o be_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o arian_n emperor_n valens_n athanasius_n allow_v of_o his_o order_n and_o because_o he_o be_v orthodox_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o bishopric_n that_o he_o prefer_v he_o to_o a_o great_a he_o 〈◊〉_d yield_v say_v synesius_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n it_o be_v asleep_o say_v of_o the_o same_o author_n himself_z a_o bishop_n and_o a_o very_a great_a man_n where_o he_o speak_v concern_v that_o matter_n viz._n in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n theophilus_n 〈◊〉_d in_o dangerous_a time_n it_o be_v necessary_a not_o to_o observe_v rule_n though_o nothing_o be_v more_o unlawful_a than_o to_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n simoniacal_o or_o by_o the_o mere_a force_n of_o the_o lay-power_n and_o though_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o episcopi_fw-la pontifical_a attest_n silverius_n obtain_v the_o popedom_n of_o rome_n by_o both_o those_o unlawful_a mean_n yet_o after_o he_o be_v ordain_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o he_o be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o all_o he_o have_v give_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n to_o the_o tyrant_n theodatus_fw-la the_o king_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o the_o tyrant_n threaten_v that_o whosoever_o refuse_v to_o consent_v to_o his_o election_n shall_v be_v punish_v with_o death_n the_o bishop_n however_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v and_o so_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n without_o any_o consent_n of_o they_o but_o after_o he_o be_v ordain_v say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o pontifical_a they_o subscribe_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o religion_n though_o the_o synod_n of_o c_o p._n before_o who_o the_o patriarch_n alexius_n be_v accuse_v for_o his_o have_v be_v promote_v to_o that_o dignity_n by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n without_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o clergy_n look_v upon_o his_o promotion_n to_o be_v altogether_o unlawful_a yet_o when_o he_o plead_v that_o he_o have_v ordain_v many_o bishop_n and_o that_o if_o they_o deprive_v he_o they_o must_v likewise_o deprive_v all_o those_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v upon_o that_o bare_a 190._o consideration_n because_o to_o deprive_v so_o many_o be_v likely_a to_o occasion_v a_o great_a disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n they_o overrule_v the_o accusation_n and_o determine_v nothing_o against_o he_o when_o calendion_n be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n and_o ordain_v by_o acacius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o c_o p._n though_o that_o imp._n be_v unlawful_a by_o the_o 4._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o constant_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v do_v as_o the_o emperor_n and_o acacius_n allege_v to_o avoid_v sedition_n in_o antioch_n the_o proceed_v be_v approve_v of_o by_o simplicius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o i_o wish_v r●atum_fw-la say_v he_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v yet_o i_o easy_o excuse_v it_o because_o it_o be_v do_v through_o necessity_n for_o that_o which_o be_v not_o voluntary_a i.e._n that_o which_o be_v do_v only_o for_o convenience_n or_o necessity_n be_v sake_n can_v be_v impute_v as_o a_o fault_n these_o example_n and_o autority_n may_v serve_v to_o show_v in_o general_n that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n so_o sacred_a but_o what_o our_o wise_a forefather_n think_v aught_o to_o be_v postpone_v to_o the_o present_a welfare_n and_o prosperity_n of_o it_o that_o the_o same_o be_v their_o opinion_n in_o reference_n to_o our_o particular_a case_n we_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v in_o its_o due_a place_n §_o 4._o our_o proposition_n be_v thus_o establish_v on_o that_o sure_a maxim_n acknowledge_v as_o have_v be_v show_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o provide_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o sinful_a and_o that_o the_o ill_a consequence_n which_o may_v possible_o attend_v it_o be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o make_v out_o first_o that_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o
sinful_a and_o two_o that_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o it_o be_v liable_a be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v §_o 5._o first_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o sinful_a for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o must_v be_v so_o for_o one_o or_o more_o of_o these_o follow_a reason_n either_o first_o because_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o some_o express_a law_n of_o god_n or_o two_o because_o it_o make_v we_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n or_o three_o because_o of_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n which_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n have_v take_v to_o their_o bishop_n and_o the_o inferior_a bishop_n to_o their_o archbishop_n or_o last_o because_o as_o one_o of_o our_o adversary_n the_o learned_a vindicator_n contend_v such_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v in_o reality_n no_o bishop_n these_o objection_n i_o shall_v consider_v distinct_o §_o 6._o first_o it_o be_v not_o against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n for_o as_o to_o our_o case_n the_o scripture_n be_v altogether_o silent_a it_o be_v true_a it_o command_v we_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o our_o governor_n and_o that_o command_v reach_n as_o well_o to_o the_o spiritual_a as_o to_o the_o temporal_a but_o when_o there_o be_v two_o that_o stand_v competitor_n and_o both_o claim_v our_o obedience_n to_o which_o of_o those_o two_o our_o obedience_n ought_v to_o be_v pay_v it_o leave_v to_o our_o wisdom_n to_o determine_v §_o 7._o neither_o two_o do_v it_o make_v we_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n for_o if_o a_o landlord_n be_v unjust_o and_o invalid_o dispossess_v of_o his_o estate_n by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n who_o think_v the_o tenant_n a_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n because_o he_o pay_v his_o rent_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n shall_v the_o clergy_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o bishop_n in_o possession_n it_o can_v only_o serve_v to_o draw_v down_o ruin_n upon_o themselves_o it_o can_v restore_v those_o who_o the_o state_n have_v depose_v it_o be_v not_o our_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n that_o eject_v the_o former_a for_o they_o be_v already_o irretrievable_o depose_v since_o the_o supreme_a power_n be_v peremptory_a against_o '_o they_o that_o have_v public_o declare_v that_o whoever_o be_v our_o bishop_n the_o old_a one_o shall_v govern_v we_o no_o long_o if_o we_o think_v the_o proceed_v unjust_a it_o be_v enough_o that_o we_o remonstrate_v against_o it_o and_o express_v our_o dissatisfaction_n if_o that_o will_v not_o do_v the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a oblige_v we_o to_o be_v quiet_a §_o 8._o neither_o three_o be_v it_o sinful_a on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n for_o that_o be_v take_v not_o absolute_o and_o unconditional_o but_o with_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o we_o take_v it_o have_v power_n to_o govern_v we_o if_o i_o take_v a_o oath_n to_o be_v faithful_a or_o obedient_a to_o a_o governor_n whether_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a i_o engage_v myself_o to_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n that_o be_v as_o one_o that_o can_v govern_v if_o therefore_o he_o can_v no_o long_o govern_v whatsoever_o the_o impediment_n be_v my_o obedience_n be_v no_o long_o engage_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o state_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o oath_n that_o be_v take_v to_o a_o bishop_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o a_o church_n be_v not_o take_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o good_a order_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o the_o church_n when_o she_o order_v such_o a_o oath_n to_o be_v take_v when_o therefore_o the_o oath_n tend_v no_o long_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n but_o notorious_o to_o schism_n disorder_n and_o confusion_n it_o can_v any_o long_o oblige_v but_o be_v void_a of_o itself_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o church_n intent_n and_o design_n in_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o it_o be_v further_a to_o be_v consider_v that_o particular_o here_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n be_v always_o take_v with_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o civil_a power_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a do_v allow_v the_o bishop_n to_o govern_v but_o let_v we_o suppose_v even_o that_o which_o in_o reason_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o suppose_v let_v we_o suppose_v that_o the_o bishop_n intend_v that_o the_o oath_n shall_v always_o oblige_v whatsoever_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n not_o the_o private_a intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o give_v a_o obligation_n to_o the_o oath_n i_o add_v that_o shall_v it_o be_v both_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o likewise_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o person_n who_o take_v the_o oath_n that_o it_o shall_v always_o oblige_v shall_v it_o run_v in_o these_o express_a word_n i_o will_v always_o adhere_v to_o you_o if_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n in_o opposition_n to_o he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o your_o place_n shall_v any_o one_o i_o say_v take_v such_o a_o oath_n as_o that_o yet_o he_o can_v be_v oblige_v by_o it_o the_o oath_n be_v in_o itself_o unlawful_a it_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o public_a repugnant_a to_o the_o will_n and_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v in_o effect_n to_o swear_v thus_o i_o will_v for_o your_o sake_n oppose_v the_o welfare_n of_o the_o public_a and_o break_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o adhere_v to_o you_o though_o i_o have_v not_o any_o reason_n to_o do_v so_o beside_o this_o bare_a oath_n to_o conclude_v whatsoever_o be_v notorious_o repugnant_a to_o the_o church_n interest_n so_o as_o to_o be_v necessary_o productive_a of_o very_o great_a evil_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v oblige_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sin_n to_o act_v according_a to_o it_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n cease_v if_o a_o bishop_n be_v deprive_v though_o never_o so_o unjust_o by_o a_o synod_n now_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o that_o it_o be_v because_o to_o adhere_v to_o a_o bishop_n when_o a_o synod_n have_v full_o depose_v he_o and_o place_v another_o in_o his_o see_n must_v occasion_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o disturb_v the_o public_a if_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n as_o no_o one_o can_v assign_v any_o other_o at_o least_o there_o can_v be_v none_o but_o what_o be_v ground_v on_o that_o then_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o case_n and_o consequent_o in_o both_o case_n the_o oath_n will_v be_v equal_o void_a it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o allege_v that_o in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o synod_n we_o cease_v to_o be_v oblige_v by_o our_o oath_n because_o every_o bishop_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v oblige_v himself_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o synod_n whether_o just_a or_o unjust_a and_o therefore_o when_o a_o synod_n have_v depose_v he_o though_o by_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n his_o place_n be_v true_o void_a by_o virtue_n of_o his_o suppose_a consent_n for_o suppose_v a_o bishop_n shall_v have_v always_o declare_v that_o he_o never_o will_v give_v his_o consent_n that_o a_o synod_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o depose_v he_o by_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n ought_v we_o not_o however_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o new_a constitute_v bishop_n our_o adversary_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v but_o why_o it_o be_v because_o the_o necessity_n of_o government_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o well_o then_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n consent_n but_o necessity_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a that_o make_v our_o oath_n void_a though_o in_o some_o respect_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o what_o be_v do_v by_o a_o competent_a or_o a_o lawful_a authority_n and_o what_o be_v do_v by_o a_o incompetent_a or_o a_o unlawful_a authority_n yet_o as_o to_o our_o acquiescence_n in_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n such_o as_o be_v here_o suppose_a i_o can_v see_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o the_o obligation_n to_o acquiesce_v be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o case_n when_o in_o both_o case_n the_o necessity_n be_v the_o same_o if_o a_o lord_n be_v dispossess_v of_o his_o manor_n by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n that_o can_v be_v resist_v a_o conqueror_n suppose_v or_o a_o unlawful_a court_n who_o think_v the_o tenant_n forswear_v
church_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a manner_n into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o the_o civil_a power_n will_v not_o suffer_v to_o govern_v any_o long_o because_o he_o refuse_v to_o own_o its_o authority_n i_o add_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o one_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n than_o it_o likewise_o must_v follow_v that_o he_o be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o depose_v but_o this_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n will_v neither_o himself_o grant_v neither_o do_v he_o i_o suppose_v believe_v that_o s._n cyprian_n think_v so_o i_o say_v that_o must_v follow_v if_o we_o serious_o consider_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o only_a good_a reason_n assignable_a why_o in_o the_o former_a case_n the_o successor_n be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n be_v this_o because_o the_o predecessor_n have_v still_o a_o right_n to_o the_o bishopric_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o latter_a case_n for_o a_o bishop_n who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o deprive_v have_v still_o as_o much_o right_n to_o his_o bishopric_n as_o a_o bishop_n invalid_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n for_o to_o i_o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o any_o unjust_a sentence_n shall_v take_v away_o the_o right_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o government_n require_v it_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v submit_v to_o such_o a_o sentence_n and_o this_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v be_v the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n when_o a_o bishop_n be_v unjust_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n we_o submit_v to_o his_o successor_n not_o because_o we_o imagine_v that_o the_o other_o have_v no_o long_a a_o right_n but_o only_o for_o peace_n sake_n that_o a_o bishop_n unjust_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n have_v still_o a_o right_n to_o that_o bishopric_n as_o well_o as_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n may_v be_v clear_o demonstrate_v from_o this_o that_o after_o he_o be_v deprive_v he_o may_v be_v again_o restore_v and_o his_o successor_n be_v depose_v by_o appeal_n to_o another_o synod_n and_o yet_o the_o eject_v successor_n be_v account_v a_o true_a bishop_n now_o be_v that_o do_v just_o or_o not_o there_o be_v no_o one_o will_v say_v it_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o successor_n shall_v be_v just_o deprive_v if_o the_o other_o have_v no_o right_n to_o conclude_v that_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o deprive_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v a_o real_a and_o true_a bishop_n will_v by_o and_o by_o appear_v by_o the_o opinion_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n in_o general_n let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o as_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o a_o sin_n so_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v liable_a be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v §_o 10._o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v be_v a_o schism_n and_o a_o persecution_n two_o evil_n as_o great_a as_o can_v possible_o befall_v the_o church_n and_o that_o those_o two_o very_a great_a evil_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o certain_a and_o the_o immediate_a consequence_n of_o a_o non-submission_n be_v too_o evident_a to_o any_o consider_v man_n to_o need_v any_o proof_n if_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o a_o submission_n may_v be_v liable_a be_v so_o great_a as_o those_o two_o evil_n but_o not_o so_o certain_a or_o if_o they_o be_v so_o certain_a but_o not_o so_o great_a it_o must_v then_o be_v grant_v that_o with_o respect_n to_o consequence_n a_o submission_n be_v more_o reasonable_a than_o a_o non-submission_n now_o if_o we_o consider_v those_o evil_a consequence_n which_o may_v just_o be_v charge_v upon_o the_o submission_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v both_o so_o great_a and_o so_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v neither_o so_o great_a nor_o so_o certain_a as_o those_o two_o evil_n which_o by_o a_o non-submission_n must_v unavoidable_o be_v bring_v upon_o the_o church_n so_o far_o indeed_o be_v the_o principle_n which_o we_o maintain_v from_o be_v necessary_o attend_v with_o any_o very_a ill_a consequence_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o foresee_v any_o consequence_n at_o all_o that_o be_v evil._n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o comply_v upon_o occasion_n with_o the_o necessity_n of_o time_n so_o if_o ever_o the_o civil_a power_n which_o to_o fear_v in_o this_o reign_n will_v be_v very_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a shall_v pretend_v to_o break_v in_o upon_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o yield_v to_o such_o imposition_n ●●_o the_o evil_n day_n must_v needs_o come_v which_o god_n forbid_v we_o will_v keep_v it_o off_o as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v when_o it_o necessary_o come_v as_o now_o we_o show_v our_o prudence_n so_o we_o will_v prove_v our_o fortitude_n not_o to_o endeavour_v to_o escape_v from_o damascus_n when_o a_o basket_n be_v fair_o offer_v will_v be_v folly_n in_o a_o apostle_n and_o to_o run_v on_o to_o martyrdom_n when_o it_o honest_o may_v be_v avoid_v be_v according_a to_o the_o sanction_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n a_o sin_n shall_v a_o person_n absolute_o unqualify_v be_v impose_v upon_o we_o for_o a_o bishop_n we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o accept_v he_o if_o a_o roman_a decius_n will_v depose_v all_o our_o bishop_n and_o not_o permit_v we_o to_o constitute_v other_o in_o their_o place_n that_o so_o he_o may_v destroy_v our_o religion_n we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o regard_v either_o what_o he_o do_v or_o command_v as_o the_o roman_n upon_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o fabian_n though_o to_o avoid_v the_o fury_n of_o a_o persecution_n bishop_n propter_fw-la rerum_fw-la &_o temporum_fw-la difficultates_fw-la we_o may_v possible_o defer_v the_o election_n yet_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o think_v it_o convenient_a we_o will_v choose_v a_o cornelius_n bishop_n notwithstanding_o the_o tyrant_n decree_n if_o a_o heretical_a king_n frazamund_n shall_v command_v we_o not_o to_o ordain_v any_o bishop_n that_o so_o the_o catholic_n religion_n may_v of_o course_n be_v root_v out_o and_o his_o heresy_n only_o prevail_v we_o will_v then_o no_o more_o value_n that_o command_v than_o the_o catholic_n heretofore_o do_v but_o in_o spite_n of_o his_o edict_n will_v get_v as_o many_o bishop_n ordain_v as_o we_o think_v convenient_a for_o the_o church_n but_o how_o can_v our_o case_n be_v compare_v with_o either_o of_o these_o here_o be_v no_o forbid_v election_n no_o depose_n all_o bishop_n in_o general_a no_o impose_v unqualify_v person_n no_o destroy_n of_o religion_n no_o advance_n of_o heresy_n the_o only_a question_n here_o be_v whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n may_v be_v follow_v when_o cephas_n be_v in_o prison_n and_o be_v render_v uncapable_a of_o act_v as_o a_o apostle_n our_o adversary_n be_v resolve_v to_o have_v cephas_n if_o they_o can_v have_v he_o they_o will_v neither_o have_v christ._n to_o we_o it_o be_v altogether_o indifferent_a whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v christ._n there_o be_v only_o one_o inconvenience_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o foresee_v which_o can_v just_o be_v charge_v on_o this_o principle_n which_o we_o advance_v and_o that_o be_v this_o that_o by_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n the_o civil_a governor_n be_v like_a to_o be_v encourage_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o church_n and_o to_o turn_v out_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o do_v not_o like_a whensoever_o he_o please_v though_o never_o so_o unjust_o if_o that_o be_v the_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n be_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o government_n by_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o depose_v that_o synod_n may_v be_v possible_o encourage_v to_o turn_v out_o other_o unjust_o as_o many_o as_o it_o do_v not_o like_a though_o never_o so_o worthy_a second_o that_o here_o in_o england_n it_o be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o the_o prince_n that_o can_v turn_v out_o a_o bishop_n he_o have_v all_o the_o same_o security_n that_o another_o subject_n can_v have_v and_o he_o can_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n without_o a_o due_a course_n of_o law_n if_o they_o mean_v that_o the_o
king_n and_o the_o parliament_n may_v by_o that_o be_v encourage_v to_o depose_v our_o bishop_n at_o pleasure_n that_o supposition_n will_v be_v wild_a and_o extravagant_a for_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o they_o can_v ever_o concur_v for_o the_o deprivation_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o upon_o a_o very_a extraordinary_a occasion_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o this_o inconvenience_n be_v not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o those_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v these_o be_v certain_a and_o present_a that_o only_o possible_a but_o three_o shall_v we_o grant_v what_o in_o reason_n can_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v as_o likely_a to_o happen_v yet_o how_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n shall_v the_o state_n here_o or_o in_o other_o country_n one_o single_a absolute_a governor_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v so_o very_o dissolute_a as_o to_o turn_v out_o frequent_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n yet_o who_o can_v look_v upon_o that_o mischief_n to_o be_v comparable_a to_o that_o of_o a_o schism_n and_o a_o persecution_n what_o can_v the_o suffering_n of_o a_o few_o particular_a man_n be_v when_o compare_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n beside_o our_o adversary_n may_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o bishop_n that_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v but_o the_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o bishop_n be_v these_o or_o those_o man_n much_o less_o of_o some_o few_o particular_a bishop_n but_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o general_a that_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v §_o 11._o and_o thus_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v sufficient_o make_v out_o what_o i_o propose_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v neither_o in_o itself_o a_o sin_n nor_o liable_a to_o ill_a consequence_n so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v or_o if_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v not_o so_o great_a and_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n as_o those_o be_v from_o whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o such_o a_o submission_n be_v in_o itself_o high_o reasonable_a which_o be_v the_o first_o proposition_n we_o propose_v to_o be_v demonstrate_v i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o general_n propose_v to_o be_v make_v out_o that_o such_o a_o submission_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n §_o 12._o but_o before_o i_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o chapter_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o last_o proposition_n there_o remain_v yet_o one_o thing_n more_o to_o be_v consider_v and_o that_o be_v the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n which_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n be_v please_v to_o fix_v upon_o we_o any_o opinion_n say_v the_o vindicator_n on_o account_n of_o which_o man_n separate_v from_o their_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v heretical_a though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n so_o and_o such_o a_o opinion_n be_v not_o heretical_a only_o when_o man_n design_o separate_v from_o other_o on_o that_o very_a account_n because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o that_o opinion_n but_o also_o when_o they_o venture_v on_o such_o practice_n on_o account_n of_o that_o opinion_n wherein_o other_o can_v communicate_v with_o they_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o they_o can_v join_v with_o they_o in_o that_o opinion_n then_o plain_o the_o differ_v in_o such_o opinion_n make_v a_o difference_n of_o communion_n unavoidable_a and_o therefore_o the_o opinion_n themselves_o in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o this_o be_v be_v signal_n of_o different_a communion_n which_o will_v come_v under_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n that_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n for_o a_o political_a crime_n or_o if_o it_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n when_o once_o it_o have_v depose_v a_o bishop_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o acknowledge_v the_o successor_n and_o in_o consequence_n of_o that_o opinion_n submit_v now_o to_o the_o present_a possessor_n be_v therefore_o heretic_n because_o he_o and_o his_o party_n can_v join_v with_o we_o in_o that_o practice_n as_o be_v of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n here_o it_o come_v into_o my_o mind_n what_o s._n jerom_n somewhere_o say_v that_o he_o that_o can_v with_o patience_n hear_v himself_o call_v heretic_n be_v no_o good_a christian._n this_o be_v true_a of_o those_o heresy_n which_o be_v so_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_n but_o in_o this_o case_n we_o dare_v to_o be_v patient_a ego_fw-la tibi_fw-la haereticus_fw-la tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la that_o be_v all_o the_o return_v we_o shall_v make_v the_o vindicator_n in_o consequence_n of_o his_o opinion_n that_o the_o civil_a authority_n have_v no_o power_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n and_o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n be_v so_o depose_v his_o successor_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o worthy_a adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v and_o disow_v those_o that_o be_v put_v into_o their_o place_n in_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o vindicator_n we_o can_v join_v with_o he_o and_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o opinion_n and_o what_o now_o follow_v from_o our_o author_n notion_n of_o heresy_n but_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o heretic_n it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n but_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n i_o shall_v here_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o add_v with_o a_o pace_n maximi_fw-la viri_fw-la that_o this_o notion_n of_o heresy_n be_v a_o groundless_a and_o a_o fancyfull_a notion_n that_o he_o may_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o heretic_n who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v not_o of_o his_o opinion_n though_o the_o opinion_n be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n heretical_a i_o grant_v for_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v not_o sinful_a on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o opinion_n maintain_v but_o only_o because_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n but_o this_o i_o assert_v in_o opposition_n to_o what_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o the_o vindicator_n that_o to_o all_o heresy_n as_o the_o word_n be_v strict_o take_v to_o denote_v a_o sin_n contradistinct_a to_o schism_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n maintain_v which_o either_o the_o church_n condemn_v or_o for_o which_o the_o person_n that_o maintain_v it_o do_v of_o himself_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o opinion_n that_o the_o vindicator_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n but_o only_o for_o what_o be_v do_v by_o the_o church_n he_o can_v be_v call_v in_o a_o strict_a sense_n a_o heretic_n but_o only_o a_o schismatic_a §_o 13._o but_o to_o wave_v this_o dispute_n as_o not_o at_o all_o material_a and_o to_o suffer_v the_o vindicator_n if_o he_o please_v to_o enjoy_v his_o notion_n what_o now_o be_v the_o life_n he_o will_v make_v of_o it_o what_o be_v his_o design_n in_o advance_v it_o the_o life_n he_o make_v of_o it_o be_v this_o he_o allege_n the_o aforesaid_a heresy_n as_o a_o reason_n for_o their_o separation_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n they_o ought_v by_o our_o own_o concession_n to_o keep_v off_o from_o our_o communion_n because_o we_o ourselves_o acknowledge_v that_o heresy_n be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n though_o we_o shall_v admit_v say_v he_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n have_v be_v successful_a in_o all_o that_o he_o have_v attempt_v we_o may_v yet_o justify_v our_o adherence_n to_o the_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o our_o separation_n from_o our_o adversary_n opposite_a altar_n and_o justify_v it_o too_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o author_n for_o even_o he_o permit_v a_o separation_n where_o orthodoxy_n be_v concern_v and_o express_o except_v this_o case_n from_o the_o number_n of_o those_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o confute_v a_o heretical_a bishop_n he_o call_v a_o false_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v strange_a that_o the_o worthy_a and_o learned_a vindicator_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o out_o in_o his_o logic_n as_o not_o to_o see_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o what_o he_o allege_n and_o to_o offer_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n for_o their_o not_o communicate_v with_o we_o if_o it_o be_v their_o not_o communicate_v with_o we_o that_o make_v our_o opinion_n heretical_a and_o we_o heretic_n how_o do_v they_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o for_o this_o reason_n because_o we_o be_v heretic_n we_o can_v not_o be_v heretic_n according_a to_o the_o vindicator_n own_o
notion_n till_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o so_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v first_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n rash_o and_o then_o to_o hunt_v for_o a_o reason_n if_o this_o plea_n of_o our_o author_n be_v good_a i_o will_v very_o fain_o know_v how_o any_o separation_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v unlawful_a let_v our_o author_n stand_v out_o a_o little_a and_o dispute_v with_o our_o old_a dissenter_n he_o ask_v a_o dissenter_n why_o he_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n the_o dissenter_n tell_v he_o it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n be_v heretical_a but_o why_o heretical_a because_o she_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o oblige_v her_o member_n to_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n and_o pursuant_n to_o that_o opinion_n she_o actual_o impose_v the_o use_n of_o '_o they_o in_o the_o use_n of_o these_o ceremony_n say_v the_o dissenter_n we_o can_v join_v with_o you_o and_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o you_o in_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o impose_v upon_o its_o member_n the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n and_o because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o the_o church_n in_o this_o opinion_n and_o practice_n upon_o that_o very_a account_n the_o church_n be_v heretical_a thus_o according_a to_o our_o author_n be_v own_o plea_n but_o the_o plea_n will_v be_v vain_a and_o illogical_a §_o 14._o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o we_o be_v not_o only_a heretic_n upon_o that_o account_n but_o as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v we_o be_v heretic_n likewise_o as_o heresy_n signify_v a_o err_a even_o in_o fundamental_o he_o affirm_v that_o our_o opinion_n be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n because_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v utter_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n distinct_a from_o the_o state_n to_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n that_o for_o political_a crime_n a_o bishop_n may_v be_v lawful_o deprive_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n or_o this_o that_o suppose_v he_o can_v be_v lawful_o so_o deprive_v yet_o if_o he_o be_v deprive_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o peace-sake_n to_o submit_v to_o his_o successor_n how_o that_o be_v destructive_a of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v perceive_v to_o i_o it_o be_v much_o more_o apparent_a that_o to_o advance_v this_o opinion_n that_o a_o bishop_n can_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n for_o any_o crime_n whatsoever_o be_v destructive_a of_o all_o civil_a government_n which_o as_o well_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a be_v of_o god_n institution_n he_o therefore_o that_o advance_v that_o notion_n advance_v a_o very_a dangerous_a notion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o my_o business_n at_o present_a to_o engage_v in_o these_o disquisition_n i_o shall_v only_o make_v bold_a to_o ask_v the_o vindicator_n a_o few_o question_n if_o he_o think_v that_o opinion_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n a_o fundamental_a heresy_n and_o enough_o to_o justify_v the_o present_a separation_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o opinion_n before_o this_o time_n i_o will_v ask_v he_o one_o question_n more_o if_o the_o late_a bishop_n shall_v be_v again_o restore_v will_v he_o then_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o advance_v that_o opinion_n if_o he_o will_v not_o than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v that_o enough_o to_o justify_v the_o present_a separation_n one_o more_o and_o then_o i_o have_v do_v i_o desire_v to_o know_v if_o our_o author_n know_v none_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n who_o themselves_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o supreme_a civil_a governor_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n for_o political_a crime_n it_o be_v strange_a if_o he_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o every_o body_n know_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o father_n themselves_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o opinion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v all_o along_o to_o this_o time_n account_v orthodox_n though_o the_o vindicator_n be_v please_v to_o declare_v it_o a_o heresy_n but_o enough_o and_o too_o much_o of_o these_o matter_n we_o will_v leave_v our_o much_o honour_a adversary_n to_o invent_v some_o other_o new_a notion_n more_o consistent_a and_o more_o useful_a for_o his_o cause_n and_o will_v now_o proceed_v to_o inquire_v how_o heretical_a our_o forefather_n be_v in_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o adhere_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n and_o in_o act_v according_o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v all_o along_o own_a and_o receive_v as_o true_a high-priest_n a_o account_n of_o all_o those_o high-priest_n from_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n solomon_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o instance_n of_o abiathar_n and_o zadok_v nice_o examine_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o god_n approbation_n of_o such_o high-priest_n a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o we_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n throughout_o all_o age_n be_v agreeable_a to_o we_o i_o shall_v first_o show_v that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n throughout_o all_o age_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o high-priest_n who_o s._n cyprian_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n be_v wont_a to_o compare_v to_o our_o bishop_n second_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n acknowledge_v and_o communicate_v with_o the_o high-priest_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o true_a high-priest_n though_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o turn_v out_o by_o their_o governor_n by_o which_o they_o seem_v to_o instruct_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o relation_n to_o our_o bishop_n or_o high-priest_n and_o three_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o the_o same_o have_v be_v all_o along_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n §_o 2._o i_o begin_v with_o the_o jew_n but_o before_o i_o proceed_v to_o example_n i_o think_v it_o convenient_a to_o prevent_v a_o objection_n that_o may_v possible_o be_v make_v this_o perhaps_o may_v be_v the_o plea_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n among_o we_o be_v of_o a_o nature_n much_o more_o spiritual_a than_o the_o office_n of_o those_o high-priest_n to_o that_o plea_n i_o answer_v that_o he_o that_o consider_v the_o true_a and_o full_a import_n of_o the_o question_n now_o before_o we_o will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o whether_o a_o person_n due_o invest_v with_o a_o ecclesiastical_a office_n of_o god_n own_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n any_o other_o can_v lawful_o succeed_v in_o that_o office_n now_o as_o to_o god_n particular_a institution_n and_o appointment_n whatsoever_o otherwise_o the_o difference_n may_v be_v which_o it_o be_v needless_a for_o we_o to_o contend_v about_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n be_v rather_o superior_a than_o inferior_a to_o our_o bishop_n it_o be_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o that_o too_o in_o a_o very_a extraordinary_a manner_n that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o highpriest_n be_v institute_v and_o it_o be_v from_o god_n alone_o that_o he_o receive_v his_o authority_n if_o therefore_o a_o person_n be_v accept_v of_o by_o god_n as_o a_o true_a and_o real_a highpriest_n though_o put_v into_o the_o room_n of_o another_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n than_o a_o bishop_n likewise_o may_v be_v true_o a_o bishop_n and_o according_o oughts_z to_o be_v receive_v though_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o that_o power_n to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o the_o annual_a expiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a people_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o highpriest_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o federal_a rite_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o that_o to_o which_o our_o saviour_n offering_n himself_o up_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v particular_o compare_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o this_o they_o do_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la so_o that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o have_v this_o divine_a institution_n perform_v by_o one_o appoint_v to_o it_o by_o god_n and_o though_o no_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o case_n of_o necessity_n yet_o necessity_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v a_o provision_n for_o itself_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a these_o annual_a expiation_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n till_o our_o saviour_n day_n for_o that_o be_v a_o certain_a consequence_n of_o their_o be_v still_o in_o covenant_n
of_o continue_v the_o highpriest_n during_o life_n be_v call_v by_o est_fw-la josephus_n a_o law_n yet_o of_o any_o contention_n occasion_v by_o the_o good_a and_o unjust_o depose_v onias_n not_o a_o word_n in_o any_o author_n on_o the_o contrary_a it_o appear_v that_o he_o meek_o submit_v to_o necessity_n and_o we_o read_v no_o more_o of_o he_o till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o highpriest_n menelaus_n that_o he_o reprehend_v that_o ungodly_a highpriest_n for_o have_v embezelled_a the_o holy_a vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o be_v therefore_o murder_v §_o 5._o jason_n after_o the_o expiration_n of_o three_o year_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n and_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o he_o have_v be_v advance_v and_o his_o young_a brother_n onias_n call_v likewise_o menelaus_n succeed_v he_o he_o be_v depose_v say_v josephus_n through_o some_o 〈◊〉_d displeasure_n which_o the_o king_n have_v conceive_v against_o he_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o bribe_n say_v jason_n of_o cyrene_n which_o his_o brother_n menelaus_n have_v offer_v for_o the_o honour_n here_o now_o be_v a_o example_n for_o our_o adversary_n but_o a_o very_a unhappy_a one_o there_o be_v no_o sedition_n occasion_v by_o the_o pious_a onias_n but_o jason_n who_o after_o he_o be_v make_v highpriest_n prove_v a_o very_a profane_a and_o ungodly_a wretch_n be_v no_o soon_o depose_v but_o he_o raise_v a_o sedition_n against_o his_o successor_n he_o raise_v a_o sedition_n for_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o high-priesthood_n say_v eusebius_n and_o josephus_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n join_v with_o he_o to_o that_o degree_n that_o menelaus_n with_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o adherent_n be_v force_v to_o flee_v away_o to_o antiochus_n though_o he_o soon_o return_v and_o enjoy_v the_o high-priesthood_n you_o will_v not_o imagine_v it_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o conscience_n or_o any_o sense_n of_o religion_n that_o cause_v that_o sedition_n or_o that_o make_v the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o people_n declare_v in_o the_o begin_n for_o jason_n no_o certain_o that_o can_v not_o be_v since_o jason_n himself_o have_v be_v advance_v to_o that_o dignity_n when_o his_o brother_n and_o predecessor_n have_v be_v unjust_o depose_v and_o that_o too_o by_o his_o procurement_n especial_o since_o that_o brother_n who_o have_v be_v unjust_o depose_v be_v still_o live_v though_o menelaus_n be_v at_o that_o time_n a_o very_a flagitious_a villain_n and_o aught_o upon_o that_o account_n to_o have_v be_v oppose_v yet_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o revenge_n and_o resentment_n that_o excite_v jason_n and_o it_o be_v chief_o the_o lewd_a and_o profane_a pastime_n which_o the_o people_n enjoy_v under_o jason_n that_o make_v they_o adhere_v in_o the_o begin_n to_o he_o read_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o 2d_o of_o maccabee_n where_o after_o a_o history_n of_o his_o excessive_a wickedness_n as_o it_o be_v there_o term_v and_o a_o account_n of_o the_o heathenish_a custom_n to_o which_o he_o have_v debauch_v the_o people_n he_o be_v style_v 〈◊〉_d the_o ungracious_a jason_n that_o ungodly_a wretch_n and_o not_o a_o highpriest_n there_o be_v yet_o another_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v heighten_v the_o people_n aversion_n to_o menelaus_n when_o first_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o that_o dignity_n and_o that_o be_v his_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a disposition_n he_o come_v say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o maccabee_n with_o the_o king_n mandate_n bring_v nothing_o worthy_a of_o the_o high-priesthood_n but_o have_v the_o fury_n of_o a_o cruel_a tyrant_n and_o the_o rage_n of_o a_o savage_a beast_n we_o will_v leave_v the_o foeda_fw-la certamina_fw-la of_o these_o two_o brother_n so_o sulpitius_n severus_n call_v they_o and_o proceed_v to_o §_o 5._o hyrcanus_n the_o second_o of_o that_o name_n who_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o high-priesthood_n and_o kingdom_n by_o his_o young_a brother_n aristobulus_n after_o he_o have_v enjoy_v the_o high-priesthood_n for_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o year_n they_o have_v fight_v a_o battle_n and_o hyrcanus_n be_v overcome_v be_v force_v to_o 4._o resign_v both_o his_o honour_n by_o a_o solemn_a league_n and_o agreement_n his_o resignation_n be_v by_o compulsion_n and_o aristobulus_n be_v look_v upon_o by_o all_o as_o a_o usurper_n josephus_n affirm_v that_o hyrcanus_n have_v still_o a_o 5._o right_n to_o the_o dignity_n and_o so_o it_o be_v afterward_o ibid._n adjudge_v by_o i._n caesar_n and_o so_o hyrcanus_n after_o that_o 5._o plead_v before_o pompey_n however_o aristobulus_n be_v own_a and_o be_v peaceable_o settle_v in_o his_o government_n hyrcanus_n submit_v to_o necessity_n and_o live_v very_o quiet_o under_o he_o he_o be_v urge_v by_o his_o friend_n antipater_n to_o endeavour_v for_o a_o restauration_n he_o deny_v to_o do_v it_o antipater_n tell_v he_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n that_o the_o king_n design_n to_o destroy_v he_o yet_o nothing_o will_v persuade_v he_o at_o last_o be_v weary_v by_o the_o importunity_n of_o antipater_n and_o affright_v by_o the_o continual_a representation_n make_v he_o of_o the_o danger_n he_o be_v in_o he_o fly_v away_o to_o aretas_n a_o king_n of_o the_o arab_n obtain_v of_o he_o a_o army_n defeat_v his_o brother_n in_o a_o battle_n and_o besiege_n he_o in_o the_o temple_n the_o siege_n be_v raise_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_n their_o cause_n be_v bring_v before_o pompey_n the_o great_a who_o leave_v it_o not_o full_o decide_v pompey_n have_v afterward_o receive_v a_o affront_n from_o aristobulus_n raise_v a_o war_n against_o he_o take_v the_o city_n jerusalem_n by_o storm_n and_o 8._o bestow_v the_o pontificate_n on_o hyrcanus_n this_o he_o do_v say_v josephus_n as_o well_o because_o of_o other_o good_a office_n which_o hyrcanus_n have_v do_v he_o as_o because_o he_o have_v hinder_v the_o jew_n of_o the_o country_n round_o about_o from_o defend_v aristobulus_n against_o he_o at_o that_o time_n that_o hyrcanus_n as_o be_v above_o say_v besiege_v aristobulus_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o city_n jerusalem_n where_o the_o temple_n be_v build_v josephus_n say_v that_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n go_v all_o over_o to_o the_o conqueror_n hyrcanus_n but_o withal_o he_o observe_v that_o the_o 3._o priest_n will_v not_o leave_v their_o present_a highpriest_n aristobulus_n but_o still_o adhere_v faithful_o to_o he_o it_o be_v further_a observable_a what_o josephus_n relate_v as_o happen_v during_o that_o siege_n for_o by_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v of_o what_o opinion_n both_o he_o and_o other_o be_v concern_v those_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n by_o the_o usurper_n aristobulus_n and_o how_o acceptable_a to_o god_n those_o act_n of_o religion_n be_v which_o he_o as_o highpriest_n perform_v though_o he_o come_v into_o the_o office_n by_o force_n and_o usurpation_n and_o be_v not_o account_v the_o josephus_n rightful_a highpriest_n whilst_o aristobulus_n 3._o say_v josephus_n be_v besiege_v in_o the_o temple_n the_o feast_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n which_o we_o call_v the_o passover_n be_v at_o hand_n the_o chief_z among_o the_o jew_n leave_v their_o country_n and_o flee_v into_o egypt_n now_o one_o onias_n a_o just_a man_n and_o belove_v of_o god_n who_o have_v former_o in_o the_o time_n of_o a_o drought_n obtain_v rain_n by_o his_o pious_a prayer_n and_o hide_v himself_o as_o perceive_v a_o civil_a war_n come_v on_o he_o the_o jew_n bring_v into_o their_o camp_n and_o require_v he_o that_o as_o he_o have_v heretofore_o prevent_v a_o famine_n so_o he_o will_v now_o draw_v down_o a_o curse_n upon_o aristobulus_n and_o all_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o he_o when_o he_o have_v long_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o and_o at_o last_o be_v threaten_v by_o the_o multitude_n he_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o pray_v thus_o o_o god_n the_o king_n of_o all_o the_o world_n since_o these_o who_o stand_v here_o with_o i_o be_v thy_o people_n and_o they_o that_o be_v besiege_v be_v thy_o priest_n i_o beseech_v thou_o not_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o either_o party_n against_o the_o other_o after_o he_o have_v make_v this_o prayer_n there_o encompass_v he_o round_o about_o certain_a villainous_a jew_n and_o they_o overwhelm_v he_o with_o stone_n which_o cruelty_n god_n immediate_o revenge_v after_o this_o manner_n whilst_o aristobulus_n be_v thus_o besiege_v the_o passover_n come_v on_o in_o which_o feast_n our_o custom_n be_v to_o honour_n god_n with_o many_o sacrifice_n now_o the_o besiege_a be_v destitute_a of_o sacrifice_n entreat_v their_o countryman_n without_o that_o for_o money_n as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v desire_v they_o will_v supply_v they_o with_o victim_n they_o demand_v a_o thousand_o drachm_n for_o each_o victim_n which_o aristobulus_n and_o the_o priest_n agree_v to_o and_o let_v down_o the_o money_n from_o the_o wall_n but_o they_o when_o
after_o that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n caiaphas_n be_v the_o prince_n and_o anna_n only_a the_o father_n and_o therefore_o when_o our_o saviour_n be_v first_o lead_v to_o annas_n he_o send_v he_o away_o to_o caiaphas_n as_o his_o superior_a and_o on_o this_o account_n likewise_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n that_o caiaphas_n be_v the_o highpriest_n that_o same_o year_n after_o that_o again_o annas_n be_v the_o prince_n and_o caiaphas_n only_o the_o father_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o act_n and_o annas_n the_o highpriest_n and_o caiaphas_n and_o john_n and_o alexander_n though_o caiaphas_n be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o proper_a and_o original_a sense_n the_o only_o highpriest_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o if_o we_o grant_v mr._n selden_n conjecture_n to_o be_v true_a though_o we_o can_v not_o conclude_v by_o the_o word_n above_o mention_v that_o our_o saviour_n own_v caiaphas_n as_o a_o true_a highpriest_n proper_o so_o call_v yet_o still_o our_o observation_n will_v hold_v good_a that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o communicate_v with_o the_o highpriest_n of_o that_o age_n and_o do_v not_o any_o where_o hint_n that_o they_o that_o in_o his_o time_n officiate_v in_o the_o temple_n as_o high-priest_n be_v not_o true_o high-priest_n and_o it_o will_v however_o appear_v that_o s._n paul_n acknowlege_v the_o reality_n of_o the_o then_o high-priest_n so_o call_v in_o the_o proper_a and_o original_a sense_n since_o he_o own_v himself_o in_o a_o error_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o person_n who_o he_o have_v revile_v be_v god_n highpriest_n for_o by_o the_o title_n of_o god_n highpriest_n the_o ecclesiastical_a office_n be_v point_v out_o to_o he_o second_o i_o deny_v mr._n selden_n conjecture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o against_o it_o i_o offer_v these_o follow_a consideration_n first_o neither_o josephus_n nor_o any_o other_o jewish_a writer_n do_v any_o where_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o high-priest_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o roman_n of_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o death_n judicial_a matter_n and_o confine_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o temple_n mr._n selden_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o writer_n and_o josephus_n have_v there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n will_v scarce_o have_v fall_v to_o have_v mention_v it_o especial_o since_o he_o mention_n that_o in_o such_o and_o such_o part_n of_o judea_n there_o be_v court_n of_o judicature_n erect_v by_o the_o roman_n second_o josephus_n be_v so_o far_o from_o warrant_v any_o such_o opinion_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o speak_v throughout_o his_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o high-priest_n proper_o so_o call_v as_o of_o person_n of_o great_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o civil_a affair_n what_o he_o say_v of_o ananus_fw-la the_o young_a be_v very_o express_v have_v say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v deprive_v josephus_n cabei_n of_o the_o high-priesthood_n and_o substitute_v in_o his_o place_n ananus_fw-la the_o son_n of_o ananus_fw-la he_o immediate_o add_v 8._o the_o young_a ananus_fw-la who_o be_v constitute_v as_o we_o say_v highpriest_n be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o rigid_a and_o severe_a temper_n by_o sect_n a_o sadducee_n which_o sort_n of_o man_n be_v the_o most_o severe_a of_o all_o jew_n in_o judicial_a matter_n be_v of_o that_o disposition_n he_o take_v a_o opportunity_n after_o festus_n the_o governor_n be_v death_n before_o his_o successor_n albinus_n be_v arrive_v in_o judea_n to_o call_v a_o council_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o command_a james_n the_o brother_n of_o jesus_n to_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o he_o condemn_v he_o together_o with_o some_o other_o and_o deliver_v they_o to_o the_o people_n to_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n this_o thing_n extreme_o displease_v all_o those_o of_o the_o city_n that_o be_v well_o dispose_v and_o zealous_a for_o the_o law_n and_o they_o private_o send_v messenger_n to_o the_o king_n to_o entreat_v he_o to_o lay_v his_o command_n upon_o ananus_fw-la not_o to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o the_o future_a it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v some_o moreover_o go_v to_o meet_v albinus_n as_o he_o come_v from_o alexandria_n and_o suggest_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o ananus_fw-la without_o his_o consent_n to_o call_v a_o council_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o jew_n without_o the_o particular_a consent_n of_o the_o governor_n to_o sit_v judge_n in_o a_o capital_a cause_n hereupon_o albinus_n write_v angry_o to_o the_o highpriest_n and_o threaten_v he_o for_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o after_o three_o month_n king_n agrippa_n deprive_v he_o for_o that_o fact_n of_o the_o high-priesthood_n and_o bestow_v the_o dignity_n on_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o damnaeus_n here_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o plain_a intimation_n that_o the_o highpriest_n as_o such_o have_v authority_n in_o civil_a affair_n though_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n might_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o roman_a governor_n sit_v judge_n in_o a_o capital_a cause_n three_o it_o be_v likewise_o confirm_v by_o that_o frequent_a and_o continual_a change_a of_o the_o highpriest_n under_o the_o roman_n for_o if_o the_o high-priest_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v as_o such_o concern_v about_o the_o sacrifice_n only_o not_o at_o all_o in_o matter_n of_o government_n how_o can_v they_o so_o frequent_o come_v under_o the_o displeasure_n of_o the_o supreme_a civil_a governor_n why_o so_o frequent_o turn_v out_o of_o their_o place_n four_o when_o s._n paul_n be_v tell_v that_o the_o person_n who_o he_o have_v revile_v be_v god_n highpriest_n that_o be_v highpriest_n proper_o so_o call_v he_o straight_o infer_v that_o then_o he_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n five_o those_o difficult_a place_n of_o scripture_n on_o which_o mr._n selden_n conjecture_n be_v bottom_v may_v well_o admit_v of_o another_o explication_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o the_o two_o chief_a ruler_n the_o prince_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o sanedrin_n may_v common_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o high-priest_n that_o i_o almost_o persuade_v myself_o that_o in_o those_o late_a time_n that_o title_n be_v common_a to_o all_o those_o of_o the_o sacerdotal_a order_n who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o sanedrin_n but_o on_o this_o i_o do_v not_o rely_v i_o have_v one_o thing_n more_o to_o offer_v to_o account_v for_o those_o many_o high-priest_n which_o be_v mention_v as_o flourish_v at_o the_o same_o time_n which_o be_v this_o that_o the_o 24_o deficerent_fw-la chief_a man_n or_o head_n of_o the_o 24_o sort_n or_o family_n of_o the_o priest_n into_o which_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o of_o chronicle_n that_o king_n david_n distribute_v the_o priest_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v peculiar_o honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o high-priest_n as_o all_o in_o general_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d priest_n so_o it_o be_v natural_a to_o distinguish_v the_o head_n of_o the_o several_a class_n from_o the_o inferior_a priest_n who_o they_o govern_v by_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d high_a or_o chief_a priest_n that_o 5._o this_o division_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v continue_v to_o our_o saviour_n time_n appear_v from_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o s._n luke_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o zacharias_n the_o father_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n be_v a_o priest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o course_n of_o ●bia_fw-la and_o it_o be_v add_v and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o while_o he_o execute_v the_o priest_n office_n in_o the_o order_n of_o his_o course_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o priest_n office_n his_o lot_n be_v to_o burn_v incense_n when_o he_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v plain_o according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o division_n make_v by_o king_n david_n in_o the_o 24_o of_o 1_o chron._n where_o the_o household_n of_o abia_n be_v mention_v as_o the_o 8_o principal_a household_n of_o the_o priest_n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v object_v that_o in_o that_o place_n of_o s._n luke_n zacharias_n be_v call_v only_o priest_n not_o high_a or_o chief_a priest_n for_o even_o the_o highpriest_n himself_o properly_z so_o call_v be_v oftentimes_o call_v by_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o priest_n that_o in_o those_o day_n there_o be_v many_o at_o the_o same_o time_n entitle_v high-priest_n be_v apparent_a from_o a_o great_a many_o place_n both_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o likewise_o of_o josephus_n that_o those_o learned_a man_n be_v mistake_v who_o think_v that_o those_o many_o high-priest_n who_o be_v mention_v by_o josephus_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o flourish_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v
call_v as_o appear_v from_o the_o same_o 5._o author_n and_o jonathan_n be_v one_o that_o have_v former_o enjoy_v that_o honour_n that_o jonathan_n be_v not_o there_o mention_v before_o ananias_n because_o he_o be_v his_o superior_a in_o some_o other_o station_n suppose_v as_o prince_n of_o the_o sanedrin_n i_o infer_v from_o hence_o that_o in_o another_o place_n where_o josephus_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o make_v of_o he_o but_o only_o of_o ananias_n who_o be_v highpriest_n proper_o so_o call_v 5._o he_o send_v ananias_n the_o highpriest_n and_o ananus_fw-la the_o captain_n bind_v to_o rome_n there_o to_o answer_v before_o caesar_n for_o what_o have_v be_v do_v another_o example_n of_o this_o nature_n we_o have_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o where_o zadok_v the_o inferior_a be_v mention_v before_o abiathar_n the_o superior_a highpriest_n 11._o and_o david_n call_v for_o zadok_n and_o abiathar_n the_o high-priest_n hence_o some_o have_v imagine_v that_o zadok_v even_o at_o that_o time_n be_v superior_a to_o abiathar_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v first_o mention_v be_v because_o by_o be_v afterward_o place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o abiathar_n and_o by_o be_v the_o first_o highpriest_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o by_o have_v his_o posterity_n establish_v in_o the_o high-priesthood_n he_o be_v at_o that_o time_n when_o that_o book_n be_v write_v much_o more_o famous_a than_o abiathar_n §_o 3._o to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o they_o acknowlege_v and_o communicate_v with_o the_o high-priest_n of_o that_o age_n as_o true_a high-priest_n i_o add_v that_o it_o appear_v moreover_o from_o 51._o s._n john_n that_o caiaphas_n be_v accept_v and_o own_a by_o god_n himself_o and_o one_o of_o they_o name_v caiaphas_n be_v the_o highpriest_n that_o same_o year_n say_v unto_o they_o you_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o nor_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o we_o that_o one_o man_n shall_v die_v for_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a nation_n perish_v not_o and_o this_o speak_v he_o not_o of_o himself_o but_o be_v high_a =_o pry_v that_o year_n he_o prophesy_v that_o jesus_n shall_v die_v for_o that_o nation_n etc._n etc._n it_o appear_v from_o these_o word_n both_o that_o s._n john_n own_a he_o to_o be_v a_o true_a highpriest_n and_o that_o as_o high_a =_o pry_v he_o receive_v from_o god_n the_o power_n of_o prophesy_v §_o 4._o i_o shall_v here_o for_o the_o close_a of_o all_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o answer_n which_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n have_v be_v please_v to_o make_v when_o urge_v with_o these_o example_n of_o the_o jew_n our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n upon_o this_o account_n say_v they_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n though_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a authority_n because_o the_o temple_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n they_o can_v not_o perform_v the_o more_o solemn_a act_n of_o their_o religion_n unless_o they_o accept_v of_o that_o highpriest_n who_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n have_v set_v over_o the_o temple_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o they_o have_v look_v upon_o the_o present_a possessor_n to_o be_v no_o true_a highpriest_n their_o be_v confine_v to_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n can_v not_o have_v be_v any_o inducement_n to_o they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o and_o to_o communicate_v with_o he_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o offer_v if_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n will_v shut_v up_o their_o temple_n they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o have_v any_o sacrifice_n or_o any_o highpriest_n at_o all_o and_o because_o they_o have_v now_o no_o temple_n they_o have_v therefore_o no_o priest_n or_o sacrifice_n so_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v permit_v to_o offer_v up_o their_o sacrifice_n by_o a_o highpriest_n due_o qualify_v they_o will_v not_o have_v think_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o offer_v any_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o any_o more_o than_o they_o will_v if_o he_o that_o be_v their_o governor_n shall_v have_v keep_v all_o lawful_a sacrifice_n from_o they_o and_o allow_v they_o only_a swine_n and_o how_o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o if_o god_n have_v not_o look_v upon_o those_o high-priest_n to_o be_v true_a and_o real_a high-priest_n he_o will_v ever_o have_v accept_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o offer_v or_o have_v send_v down_o upon_o they_o as_o high-priest_n his_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n if_o a_o swine_n have_v be_v offer_v will_v god_n have_v accept_v that_o sacrifice_n because_o the_o civil_a governor_n will_v permit_v no_o other_o to_o be_v offer_v chap._n iu._n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n submit_v all_o along_o to_o such_o bishop_n if_o account_v orthodox_n as_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n though_o never_o so_o unjust_o no_o example_n either_o for_o or_o against_o we_o in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n all_o the_o emperor_n be_v then_o heathen_n the_o example_n of_o felix_n ii_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o liberius_n unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n and_o against_o liberius_n consent_n yet_o he_o be_v own_a by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n by_o the_o roman_a clergy_n among_o they_o by_o the_o famous_a damasus_n who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n he_o be_v own_a as_o metropolitan_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o rome_n his_o ordination_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o valid_a by_o even_o his_o adversary_n liberius_n he_o have_v be_v all_o along_o own_a by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n and_o true_a pope_n what_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n that_o they_o all_o along_o own_a they_o as_o true_a high-priest_n and_o that_o god_n himself_o approve_v of_o they_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o two_o forego_v chapter_n i_o come_v now_o to_o show_v in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n throughout_o all_o age_n i_o mean_v the_o generality_n of_o they_o in_o every_o particular_a age_n with_o respect_n to_o their_o bishop_n provide_v only_o that_o they_o think_v they_o upon_o no_o other_o account_n just_o exceptionable_a for_o the_o three_o first_o age_n the_o emperor_n be_v all_o heathen_n and_o if_o they_o depose_v any_o bishop_n they_o do_v it_o to_o destroy_v christianity_n and_o all_o bishop_n in_o general_a it_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v expect_v that_o the_o three_o first_o age_n shall_v afford_v we_o any_o example_n but_o as_o they_o afford_v we_o no_o example_n so_o neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n produce_v any_o one_o single_a example_n of_o those_o age_n that_o make_v for_o their_o cause_n we_o can_v say_v say_v our_o adversary_n the_o learned_a vindicator_n that_o even_o in_o the_o age_n of_o st._n cyprian_n it_o be_v very_o notorious_a that_o they_o then_o own_a no_n such_o power_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n to_o deprive_v bishop_n of_o their_o pure_o spiritual_a power_n and_o that_o the_o church_n as_o a_o society_n distinct_a from_o the_o state_n subsist_v on_o their_o not_o own_v it_o even_o as_o to_o a_o deprivation_n of_o their_o particular_a district_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v notorious_a and_o as_o notorious_a as_o any_o one_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o those_o age_n not_o except_v that_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n itself_o that_o christian_n then_o and_o not_o only_o then_o but_o in_o all_o the_o former_a persecution_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o very_a age_n do_v own_v themselves_o bind_v to_o adhere_v to_o their_o bishop_n when_o it_o be_v notorious_a withal_o that_o those_o bishop_n be_v set_v up_o and_o maintain_v against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n it_o be_v as_o notorious_a also_o that_o this_o adherence_n of_o they_o be_v not_o only_a matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v all_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v here_o but_o a_o duty_n own_a by_o they_o as_o oblige_v in_o conscience_n and_o as_o the_o result_n of_o principle_n again_o say_v the_o vindicator_n till_o our_o adversary_n can_v disarm_v we_o of_o the_o advantage_n we_o have_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n signify_v on_o occasion_n of_o these_o early_a instance_n of_o schism_n in_o s._n cyprian_n '_o s_o age_n their_o author_n collection_n of_o late_a instance_n be_v it_o never_o so_o pertinent_a to_o their_o purpose_n can_v do_v they_o no_o
service_n shall_v a_o person_n unacquainted_a with_o the_o history_n and_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n read_v what_o the_o vindicator_n have_v here_o so_o positive_o assert_v he_o can_v not_o but_o conclude_v that_o the_o three_o first_o age_n be_v full_a of_o example_n against_o we_o but_o they_o that_o be_v not_o utter_o stranger_n to_o the_o practice_n and_o the_o history_n of_o those_o age_n know_v very_o well_o that_o all_o that_o the_o vindicator_n lay_v down_o be_v unworthy_a of_o so_o learned_a a_o man_n either_o utter_o untrue_a or_o not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o his_o purpose_n that_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o age_n do_v not_o own_o any_o power_n in_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n to_o deprive_v bishop_n of_o their_o pure_o spiritual_a power_n be_v what_o we_o never_o deny_v that_o they_o ever_o disow_v the_o power_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n to_o deprive_v a_o bishop_n of_o his_o particular_a district_n if_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o magistrate_n or_o if_o upon_o any_o other_o civil_a account_n he_o deserve_v to_o be_v deprive_v our_o adversary_n can_v demonstrate_v but_o it_o be_v not_o now_o our_o business_n to_o inquire_v concern_v that_o we_o be_v only_o at_o present_a to_o inquire_v whether_o ever_o they_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n because_o his_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o adhere_v to_o their_o bishop_n though_o set_v up_o and_o maintain_v against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n we_o acknowledge_v but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o our_o adversary_n purpose_v if_o they_o still_o adhere_v to_o their_o bishop_n when_o the_o persecute_v emperor_n endeavour_v to_o root_v out_o christianity_n by_o drive_v away_o the_o bishop_n what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o case_n now_o before_o we_o shall_v our_o magistrate_n like_o the_o persecutor_n of_o those_o age_n endeavour_v to_o destroy_v christianity_n by_o deprive_v we_o of_o our_o bishop_n and_o by_o suffer_v none_o to_o be_v substitute_v in_o their_o place_n then_o those_o bishop_n will_v be_v our_o only_a bishop_n and_o as_o such_o we_o shall_v still_o adhere_v to_o '_o they_o if_o in_o those_o age_n the_o emperor_n have_v only_o depose_v such_o bishop_n as_o will_v not_o own_v their_o authority_n or_o as_o otherwise_o deserve_v to_o be_v deprive_v and_o have_v suffer_v other_o person_n as_o worthy_a to_o be_v put_v into_o their_o place_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o age_n will_v have_v do_v as_o we_o now_o do_v as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o very_a next_o age_n and_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v all_o along_o do_v i_o shall_v answer_v all_o that_o the_o vindicator_n have_v say_v or_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a to_o say_v concern_v the_o practice_n of_o those_o age_n with_o this_o challenge_n that_o he_o show_v i_o any_o one_o single_a instance_n of_o a_o bishop_n disow_v by_o the_o church_n in_o those_o three_o first_o century_n for_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n if_o he_o can_v do_v that_o i_o shall_v only_o desire_v he_o to_o produce_v the_o authority_n of_o any_o one_o single_a writer_n of_o those_o age_n that_o direct_o make_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o a_o bishop_n so_o constitute_v ought_v not_o upon_o that_o account_n to_o be_v own_a till_o that_o be_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o be_v please_v to_o allege_v i_o shall_v only_o say_v this_o of_o he_o magna_fw-la dicit_fw-la sed_fw-la nihil_fw-la probat_fw-la §_o 2._o the_o first_o instance_n of_o a_o orthodox_n bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o orthodox_n bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v that_o of_o felix_n ii_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o in_o the_o year_n 355._o ccclu._n be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o liberius_n depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n that_o liberius_n be_v depose_v and_o banish_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n without_o any_o pretence_n to_o a_o synod_n and_o that_o too_o very_o unjust_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o he_o be_v orthodox_n and_o refuse_v to_o comply_v with_o he_o in_o subscribe_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o s._n athanasius_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v manifest_a beyond_o all_o doubt_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o historian_n 37._o socrates_n 11._o sozomen_n 17._o theodores_fw-la 835._o s._n athanasius_n himself_o 8._o ammianus_n marcellinus_n and_o pontifical_a other_o fellix_fw-la who_o be_v put_v into_o his_o place_n though_o he_o be_v reject_v by_o the_o much_o great_a number_n of_o the_o laity_n of_o rome_n because_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n and_o because_o he_o be_v think_v to_o favour_v that_o party_n yet_o by_o all_o such_o as_o be_v satisfy_v that_o he_o be_v real_o orthodox_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v without_o any_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o lay_v and_o unjust_a deprivation_n of_o liberius_n theodoret_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o he_o be_v at_o church_n there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n will_v go_v into_o it_o but_o what_o do_v he_o say_v be_v the_o reason_n it_o be_v not_o because_o liberius_n have_v be_v depose_v only_o by_o the_o civil_a authority_n but_o because_o he_o communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n after_o the_o great_a liberius_n say_v he_o there_o be_v ordain_v one_o of_o his_o deacon_n name_v felix_n who_o indeed_o have_v continue_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n 〈◊〉_d yet_o with_o those_o that_o endeavour_v to_o subvert_v it_o he_o free_o communicate_v and_o on_o that_o account_n there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o rome_n will_v go_v into_o the_o church_n when_o he_o be_v there_o shall_v we_o grant_v what_o theodoret_n say_v that_o none_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o rome_n will_v communicate_v with_o he_o yet_o this_o at_o least_o we_o have_v gain_v by_o his_o testimony_n that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v refuse_v if_o he_o have_v not_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n that_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o people_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o pope_n felix_n be_v because_o they_o think_v he_o a_o heretic_n be_v express_o assert_v by_o freculphus_n bishop_n of_o lisieux_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 840._o liberius_n 4._o say_v he_o know_v that_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n decline_v the_o communion_n of_o his_o successor_n felix_n as_o be_v a_o heretic_n if_o freculphus_n do_v not_o write_v this_o from_o some_o ancient_a historian_n as_o indeed_o he_o can_v not_o read_v so_o concern_v the_o clergy_n for_o that_o be_v very_o false_a as_o will_v by_o and_o by_o appear_v then_o by_o that_o conjecture_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v there_o be_v any_o other_o good_a reason_n for_o which_o they_o may_v separate_v from_o he_o it_o appear_v likewise_o by_o the_o testimony_n even_o of_o s._n athanasius_n that_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o people_n aversion_n to_o felix_n be_v because_o he_o be_v put_v in_o by_o the_o heretic_n and_o be_v himself_o think_v one_o 861._o but_o the_o people_n say_v he_o well_o know_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heretic_n do_v not_o suffer_v they_o felix_n and_o his_o ordainer_n to_o enter_v into_o their_o church_n but_o separate_v from_o their_o communion_n that_o s._n athanasius_n think_v felix_n a_o heretic_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o for_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o he_o and_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o he_o but_o as_o put_v by_o the_o arian_n into_o liberius_n place_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v natural_a for_o he_o to_o think_v he_o as_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n do_v one_o of_o that_o party_n but_o though_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n be_v so_o far_o possess_v with_o prejudice_n against_o he_o through_o the_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a difficulty_n affection_n which_o they_o have_v for_o liberius_n as_o not_o to_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v convince_v but_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o arian_n yet_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n know_v he_o to_o be_v thorough_o orthodox_n and_o according_o receive_v he_o for_o their_o bishop_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o presbyter_n marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n say_v of_o it_o precum_fw-la the_o same_o day_n say_v they_o that_o liberius_n go_v away_o into_o banishment_n all_o the_o clergy_n that_o be_v the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o archdeacon_n felix_n and_o damasus_n liberius_n '_o s_o deacon_n and_o all_o that_o bare_a office_n in_o the_o church_n with_o one_o accord_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n oblige_v themselves_o by_o a_o oath_n not_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o other_o bishop_n as_o long_o as_o liberius_n be_v live_v but_o the_o clergy_n notwithstanding_o their_o oath_n accept_v of_o felix_n the_o archdeacon_n when_o
do_v not_o appear_v from_o these_o word_n that_o they_o think_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o receive_v a_o bishop_n when_o the_o other_o have_v be_v unjust_o depose_v they_o only_o seem_v to_o reflect_v upon_o their_o be_v forswear_v so_o they_o afterward_o say_v that_o liberius_n pardon_v their_o perjury_n and_o do_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o other_o sin_n pardon_v if_o they_o mean_v any_o more_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o in_o regard_n that_o felix_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o say_v presbyter_n be_v great_a admirer_n of_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o do_v not_o allow_v of_o a_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o the_o arian_n i_o add_v that_o whatsoever_o their_o opinion_n may_v be_v it_o deserve_v not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v regard_v since_o what_o they_o write_v be_v direct_o against_o pope_n damasus_n who_o be_v one_o of_o that_o party_n and_o since_o when_o they_o write_v they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o have_v never_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v in_o particular_a of_o the_o historian_n sozomen_n that_o he_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n he_o say_v that_o when_o liberius_n be_v restore_v he_o and_o felix_n be_v co-bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o felix_n sozomen_n say_v he_o after_o liberius_n be_v join_v with_o he_o live_v but_o a_o little_a while_n and_o liberius_n alone_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o this_o indeed_o happen_v by_o god_n particular_a providence_n lest_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n shall_v be_v dishonour_v by_o be_v govern_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o two_o bishop_n which_o be_v both_o repugnant_a to_o the_o unity_n and_o against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n though_o '_o this_o be_v rome_n not_o altogether_o true_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n yet_o from_o what_o he_o say_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o discover_v that_o this_o be_v his_o opinion_n that_o felix_n be_v a_o true_a bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o acknowledge_v he_o as_o such_o yet_o no_o one_o more_o tender_a of_o the_o church_n honour_n than_o he_o as_o appear_v from_o these_o same_o word_n though_o we_o have_v be_v a_o long_a while_n in_o the_o company_n of_o pope_n felix_n and_o the_o reader_n i_o presume_v begin_v to_o grow_v weary_a of_o it_o yet_o before_o we_o shake_v hand_n there_o must_v one_o thing_n more_o be_v clear_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o pontifical_a that_o when_o liberius_n be_v depose_v it_o be_v by_o his_o own_o advice_n that_o felix_n be_v make_v bishop_n in_o his_o room_n in_o this_o the_o pontifical_a be_v follow_v by_o several_a of_o the_o modern_n in_o particular_a by_o antoninus_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n who_o 2._o tell_v we_o that_o either_o liberius_n resign_v and_o so_o together_o with_o other_o choose_v felix_n for_o his_o successor_n or_o else_o he_o make_v he_o his_o vicar-general_n to_o supply_v his_o place_n in_o his_o absence_n if_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o be_v true_a than_o all_o that_o we_o have_v hitherto_o say_v make_v nothing_o for_o our_o purpose_n it_o therefore_o high_o concern_v we_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o falseness_n of_o that_o story_n we_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o ease_n and_o that_o from_o these_o consideration_n first_o that_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n when_o liberius_n be_v about_o to_o leave_v the_o city_n engage_v themselves_o to_o he_o by_o a_o oath_n not_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o other_o bishop_n whilst_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o that_o when_o they_o do_v accept_v of_o felix_n they_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o perjure_a this_o be_v express_o attest_v by_o s._n jerome_n the_o presbyter_n marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n and_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o register_n quote_v by_o onuphrius_n who_o all_o live_v at_o that_o time_n second_o that_o the_o same_o s._n jerome_n and_o likewise_o ruffinus_n and_o socrates_n and_o s._n athanasius_n himself_o express_o affirm_v and_o other_o plain_o intimate_a that_o felix_n be_v put_v into_o liberius_n place_n by_o the_o arian_n three_o that_o liberius_n be_v again_o restore_v felix_n with_o all_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n that_o have_v submit_v to_o he_o be_v with_o violence_n expel_v and_o liberius_n enter_v rome_n as_o a_o conqueror_n so_o s._n jerome_n affirm_v and_o with_o he_o agree_v the_o pontifical_a itself_o theodoret_n socrates_n onuphrius_n register_n and_o the_o presbyter_n marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n to_o conclude_v that_o story_n of_o the_o pontifical_a that_o liberius_n consent_v to_o the_o make_n of_o felix_n pope_n be_v by_o baronius_n himself_o reject_v as_o not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o be_v hearken_v to_o the_o falseness_n of_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v discover_v by_o platina_n himself_o and_o long_o before_o he_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr vitis_n pontificum_fw-la ascribe_v to_o luitprandus_fw-la who_o though_o in_o other_o thing_n they_o follow_v the_o pontifical_a and_o say_v as_o that_o do_v that_o the_o sacerdotes_fw-la call_v a_o synod_n and_o make_v felix_n bishop_n yet_o they_o leave_v out_o those_o word_n cum_fw-la consilio_fw-la liberii_n i_o shall_v only_o add_v that_o if_o liberius_n give_v his_o consent_n to_o the_o election_n of_o felix_n than_o felix_n be_v the_o rightful_a and_o the_o only_a bishop_n since_o therefore_o liberius_n be_v again_o receive_v and_o own_a by_o the_o catholic_n church_n when_o felix_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v bare_a authority_n we_o shall_v if_o we_o grant_v that_o story_n to_o be_v true_a only_o change_v one_o instance_n for_o another_o not_o lose_v one_o and_o thus_o have_v we_o do_v with_o the_o famous_a example_n of_o felix_n and_o liberius_n a_o example_n which_o our_o adversary_n as_o i_o find_v after_o this_o be_v write_v be_v so_o unhappy_a as_o to_o allege_v for_o their_o cause_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o felix_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o catholic_n of_o rome_n so_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 7._o further_a account_n of_o the_o baroccian_a ms._n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 60._o unity_n of_o priesthood_n etc._n etc._n once_o more_o say_v the_o latter_a and_o then_o most_o or_o all_o my_o instance_n will_v be_v review_v and_o make_v good_a and_o that_o relate_v to_o liberius_n and_o felix_n liberius_n be_v banish_v and_o felix_n his_o deacon_n be_v make_v bishop_n in_o his_o stead_n a_o man_n say_v sozomen_n always_o report_v to_o be_v firm_a to_o the_o nicene_n faith_n and_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o religion_n altogether_o blameless_a and_o yet_o when_o liberius_n be_v recalled_a from_o banishment_n felix_n be_v force_v to_o retire_v nay_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n though_o request_v thereunto_o by_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o so_o much_o according_a to_o theodoret_n as_o suffer_v he_o to_o remain_v copartner_n with_o liberius_n in_o the_o bishopric_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v evident_a let_v mr._n hody_n say_v what_o he_o will_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v something_o more_o require_v in_o a_o new_a bishop_n than_o bare_o to_o be_v orthodox_n it_o be_v impossible_a but_o these_o author_n must_v have_v know_v at_o lest_o something_o of_o what_o have_v be_v above_o demonstrate_v but_o they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o will_v be_v for_o their_o profit_n to_o let_v their_o reader_n know_v all_o to_o confirm_v our_o assertion_n say_v the_o author_n first_o quote_v that_o the_o ancient_n think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n when_o the_o predecessor_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n you_o may_v command_v a_o great_a many_o instance_n from_o the_o church_n of_o france_n italy_n asia_n egypt_n and_o the_o like_a at_o present_a i_o shall_v only_o produce_v that_o of_o felix_n and_o liberius_n i_o be_o sorry_a those_o many_o instance_n of_o france_n italy_n asia_n egypt_n etc._n etc._n be_v conceal_v by_o our_o author_n what_o sort_n of_o instance_n they_o be_v we_o may_v guess_v by_o that_o of_o p._n felix_n which_o as_o one_o of_o his_o best_a he_o think_v fit_a to_o produce_v when_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o draw_v out_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o artillery_n i_o dare_v engage_v they_o will_v either_o appear_v to_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o wood_n or_o may_v easy_o be_v turn_v against_o he_o i_o expect_v the_o former_a in_o regard_n that_o to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n he_o produce_v the_o example_n of_o s._n hilary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n who_o say_v he_o be_v banish_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n yet_o be_v still_o own_a as_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v and_o that_o he_o prove_v from_o those_o word_n of_o he_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n licet_fw-la in_o exilio_fw-la permanens_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la adhuc_fw-la per_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la meos_fw-la communionem_fw-la distribuens_fw-la if_o s._n hilary_n
but_o then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n how_o eustochius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v depose_v on_o that_o account_n by_o the_o emperor_n when_o none_o of_o the_o other_o foreign_a patriarch_n be_v depose_v and_o at_o least_o a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o even_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n himself_o be_v depose_v i_o can_v easy_o imagine_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o eustratius_n who_o live_v at_o constantinople_n in_o those_o time_n and_o write_v the_o life_n of_o the_o patriarch_n eutychius_n who_o be_v depose_v for_o not_o subscribe_v to_o the_o emperor_n doctrine_n will_v have_v speak_v somewhere_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n his_o have_v be_v depose_v on_o the_o same_o account_n especial_o since_o he_o mention_n that_o anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v on_o that_o account_n extreme_o persecute_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o upon_o the_o brink_n of_o deprivation_n as_o for_o the_o reason_n give_v by_o theophanes_n that_o i_o be_o sure_a be_v false_a for_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o 〈◊〉_d cyrillus_n scythopolitanus_n that_o the_o neolauritan●_n be_v expel_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v own_o command_n because_o they_o refuse_v to_o anathematise_v origen_n didymus_n and_o evagrius_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o five_o general_n council_n macarius_n be_v restore_v upon_o the_o ejectment_n of_o eustochius_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o all_o as_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o enjoy_v the_o honour_n till_o he_o die_v which_o be_v four_o year_n johannes_n moschus_n 96._o tell_v we_o of_o one_o julianus_n a_o monk_n of_o palestine_n who_o doubt_v for_o some_o time_n whither_o or_o no_o he_o ought_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o archbishop_n macarius_n and_o go_v to_o s._n symeon_n stylites_n the_o latter_a of_o that_o name_n to_o ask_v his_o advice_n desire_v to_o know_v 〈◊〉_d how_o he_o ought_v to_o carry_v himself_o towards_o a_o brother_n who_o have_v commit_v fornication_n and_o towards_o one_o who_o by_o oath_n have_v engage_v himself_o to_o his_o party_n s._n symeon_n answer_v 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o separate_v thyself_o from_o the_o holy_a church_n for_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n she_o be_v not_o amiss_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o monk_n scruple_v to_o communicate_v with_o macarius_n be_v because_o he_o think_v he_o a_o origenist_n whether_o it_o happen_v before_o he_o be_v depose_v or_o after_o he_o be_v restore_v be_v uncertain_a i_o believe_v it_o be_v before_o he_o be_v depose_v in_o the_o etc._n life_n of_o s._n gregory_n bishop_n of_o agrigentum_n he_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o etc._n saint_n be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n and_o to_o have_v ordain_v s._n gregory_n deacon_n but_o this_o life_n though_o it_o be_v quote_v by_o baronius_n etc._n etc._n as_o true_a be_v nothing_o but_o the_o forgery_n of_o metaphrastes_n and_o all_o those_o story_n be_v notorious_a lie_n for_o in_o the_o same_o life_n it_o be_v say_v that_o s._n gregory_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o agrigentum_n after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o general_n council_n in_o which_o the_o patriarch_n etc._n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n and_o cyrus_n be_v condemn_v as_o monothelites_n which_o council_n be_v call_v in_o the_o year_n 681_o near_o 120_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o patriarch_n macarius_n however_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o opinion_n posterity_n have_v of_o that_o patriarch_n concern_v any_o schism_n occasion_v by_o macarius_n when_o he_o be_v depose_v or_o afterward_o by_o eustochius_n not_o a_o word_n in_o any_o author_n chap._n x._o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o emp._n justinian_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o his_o heresy_n john_n surname_v scholasticus_n be_v make_v patriarch_n in_o his_o room_n after_o john_n be_v consecrate_v patriarch_n eutychius_n be_v condemn_v by_o a_o assembly_n that_o consist_v as_o well_o of_o lay-lord_n a_o bishop_n not_o only_o of_o ecclesiastic_n as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v he_o actual_o lay_v claim_v to_o the_o see_v despise_v the_o sentence_n of_o his_o judge_n as_o null_n and_o invalid_a because_o they_o proceed_v unjust_o and_o uncanonical_o against_o he_o and_o excommunicate_v they_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o his_o successor_n because_o he_o prove_v orthodox_n be_v receive_v and_o own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n he_o continue_v in_o the_o see_v near_o 13_o year_n near_o 12_o year_n under_o justin_n the_o young_a a_o orthodox_n emp._n he_o be_v own_a by_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n eutychius_n be_v exceed_o belove_v john_n a_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v consecrate_v by_o he_o for_o what_o reason_n anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n reprove_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o be_v ordain_v by_o he_o anastasus_fw-la do_v not_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o he_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n though_o eutychius_n look_v upon_o his_o deprivation_n as_o absolute_o invalid_a and_o though_o he_o never_o resign_v but_o account_v himself_o still_o the_o rightful_a patriarch_n yet_o he_o live_v quiet_o and_o never_o endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n dr._n crakanthorp_n opinion_n that_o eutychius_n be_v depose_v for_o be_v a_o heretic_n confute_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o life_n of_o eutychius_n often_o quote_v in_o this_o chapter_n vindicate_v against_o the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o year_n 565_o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o i_o mention_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emp._n justinian_n and_o john_n former_o a_o advocate_n afterward_o a_o presbyter_n of_o antioch_n who_o reside_v at_o that_o time_n at_o constantinople_n as_o apocrisiarius_n for_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n the_o same_o with_o he_o who_o collection_n of_o canon_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la juris_fw-la canonici_fw-la be_v advance_v to_o the_o see_n this_o instance_n the_o author_n of_o our_o baroccian_a treatise_n take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o reign_n say_v he_o of_o the_o emp._n justinian_n eutychius_n of_o amasia_n be_v constitute_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n a_o man_n holy_a and_o belove_v of_o god_n be_v unjust_o depose_v and_o expel_v the_o city_n and_o john_n be_v prefer_v to_o the_o see_n but_o eutychius_n do_v not_o upon_o that_o account_n separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o john_n and_o both_o therefore_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n the_o collector_n of_o the_o synodicon_n 〈◊〉_d tell_v we_o that_o the_o emp._n call_v a_o synod_n and_o depose_v eutychius_n because_o he_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n maintain_v by_o that_o synod_n i._n e._n because_o he_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o aphthartodocetae_n who_o think_v our_o saviour_n humane_a nature_n incorruptible_a which_o the_o emp._n and_o his_o synod_n maintain_v the_o truth_n be_v this_o he_o be_v first_o banish_v by_o the_o emp._n and_o after_o his_o successor_n be_v ordain_v he_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o synod_n or_o assembly_n consist_v partly_o of_o bishop_n and_o partly_o of_o lay-lord_n 38._o evagrius_n pass_v over_o this_o business_n too_o slight_o and_o only_o say_v that_o he_o be_v expel_v for_o what_o or_o whether_o by_o a_o synod_n or_o not_o he_o do_v not_o acquaint_v we_o that_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v express_o assert_v by_o chron._n victor_n tun._n 203._o theophanes_n chronol_n nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n 272._o glycas_n 9_o zonaras_n comp._n cedrenus_n ms._n nicephorus_n callisti_fw-la and_o so_o the_o emp._n 〈◊〉_d basilius_n intimate_v of_o who_o not_o one_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o a_o synod_n a_o particular_a and_o exact_a account_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n we_o have_v in_o his_o life_n which_o be_v write_v by_o eustratius_n common_o but_o erroneous_o call_v eustathius_n who_o be_v one_o of_o his_o presbyter_n and_o a_o constant_a attendant_n upon_o he_o both_o before_o and_o in_o his_o banishment_n the_o life_n be_v extant_a not_o only_o in_o latin_a as_o the_o vindicator_n believe_v but_o likewise_o in_o sanct._n greek_a and_o this_o be_v the_o account_n he_o give_v we_o the_o emp._n say_v eustratius_n desire_v he_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o aphthartodocetae_n etc._n which_o when_o he_o refuse_v to_o do_v he_o be_v persuade_v by_o some_o of_o his_o noble_n and_o by_o certain_a priest_n to_o depose_v he_o which_o according_o he_o do_v for_o on_o s._n timothy_n be_v day_n as_o eutychius_n be_v officiate_a in_o the_o church_n of_o hormisdas_n his_o palace_n be_v violent_o enter_v by_o a_o captain_n together_o with_o his_o soldier_n who_o seize_v his_o servant_n design_v to_o make_v they_o witness_v something_o against_o he_o that_o he_o
the_o author_n of_o which_o can_v not_o but_o be_v very_o well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o diptych_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n he_o affirm_v that_o both_o john_n and_o eutychius_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o above-cited_n photius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 858_o call_v our_o patriarch_n john_n saint_n john_n or_o john_n of_o bless_a memory_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o be_v not_o only_a own_a and_o receive_v as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n but_o be_v likewise_o account_v a_o very_a worthy_a and_o a_o holy_a patriarch_n eight_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n no_o division_n in_o the_o church_n on_o eutychius_n account_n and_o that_o he_o himself_o though_o he_o have_v never_o resign_v but_o always_o look_v upon_o himself_o as_o the_o rightful_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v nevertheless_o continue_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n i_o gather_v from_o hence_o that_o when_o john_n be_v dead_a the_o emperor_n justin_n and_o tiberius_n or_o the_o emperor_n and_o caesar_n have_v decree_v that_o eutychius_n shall_v be_v restore_v send_v messenger_n away_o to_o amasea_n command_v they_o to_o bring_v he_o away_o to_o constantinople_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o dignity_n whether_o willing_a or_o unwilling_a so_o eustratius_n 〈◊〉_d tell_v we_o express_o so_o quiet_o do_v the_o good_a man_n live_v in_o his_o monastery_n at_o amasea_n so_o far_o from_o head_v a_o schism_n as_o a_o antipatriarch_n that_o the_o emperor_n do_v not_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v restore_v or_o not_o and_o thus_o be_v confirm_v what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n assert_n that_o eutychius_n do_v not_o separate_v from_o john_n be_v communion_n we_o must_v not_o bid_v farewell_o to_o our_o patriarch_n eutychius_n till_o we_o have_v clear_v he_o from_o a_o charge_n and_o accusation_n which_o dr._n crakanthorp_n have_v lay_v against_o he_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o council_n treatise_n concern_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n in_o which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o clear_v that_o emperor_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n against_o cardinal_n baronius_n will_v needs_o persuade_v we_o that_o the_o patriarch_n eutychius_n be_v not_o depose_v by_o justinian_n because_o he_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o aphthartodocetae_n but_o for_o be_v a_o origenian_a heretic_n that_o eutychius_n have_v write_v a_o book_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n in_o which_o he_o contend_v that_o our_o body_n after_o the_o resurrection_n will_v not_o be_v proper_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o aereal_a and_o impalpable_a the_o doctor_n prove_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o say_v that_o he_o himself_o dispute_v against_o he_o if_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o eutychius_n be_v expel_v than_o all_o that_o we_o have_v allege_v concern_v the_o church_n acknowlege_v his_o successor_n john_n will_v be_v of_o no_o force_n because_o eutychius_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o consequent_o his_o expulsion_n just_a whatsoever_o that_o authority_n be_v by_o which_o he_o be_v expel_v i_o be_o therefore_o concern_v to_o confute_v this_o pretend_a reason_n and_o 1._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o book_n which_o eutychius_n publish_v concern_v the_o resurrection_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v publish_v before_o the_o time_n of_o his_o expulsion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o publish_v till_o after_o his_o restauration_n this_o plain_o appear_v from_o what_o pope_n gregory_n say_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o he_o reside_v at_o constantinople_n as_o legate_n from_o pope_n pelagius_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o emperor_n tiberius_n he_o have_v a_o great_a dispute_n with_o the_o patriarch_n eutychius_n about_o that_o subject_a and_o 29._o tiberius_n have_v hear_v the_o argument_n of_o both_o side_n be_v about_o to_o condemn_v the_o patriarch_n book_n to_o be_v burn_v which_o have_v be_v do_v say_v he_o have_v not_o the_o patriarch_n die_v if_o eutychius_n have_v be_v expel_v by_o justinian_n for_o that_o opinion_n which_o he_o then_o maintain_v it_o can_v be_v suppose_v but_o that_o pope_n gregory_n will_v have_v give_v a_o account_n of_o it_o 2._o that_o eutychius_n be_v depose_v by_o justinian_n because_o he_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o aphthartodocetae_n be_v unanimous_o assert_v by_o all_o the_o greek_a author_n who_o have_v mention_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o deprivation_n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o synodicon_n glycas_n zonaras_n theophanes_n joel_n nicephorus_n callisti_fw-la and_o eustratius_n the_o writer_n of_o his_o life_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o eustratius_n assign_v a_o false_a reason_n that_o so_o he_o may_v salve_v his_o reputation_n and_o conceal_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n for_o have_v he_o bee_v depose_v for_o maintain_v any_o heretical_a opinion_n there_o be_v no_o one_o but_o must_v have_v know_v it_o and_o eustratius_n will_v never_o have_v be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o give_v a_o false_a reason_n before_o that_o great_a congregation_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v his_o oration_n neither_o do_v he_o conceal_v the_o imputation_n which_o be_v by_o some_o fix_v upon_o he_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n after_o a_o account_n give_v of_o his_o death_n he_o 90._o take_v a_o occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o that_o imputation_n and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v occasion_v by_o his_o being_n not_o right_o understand_v to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o it_o plain_o appear_v from_o evagrius_n who_o live_v and_o flourish_v at_o that_o time_n that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n do_v just_a before_o his_o death_n endeavour_v to_o advance_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o aphthartodocetae_n and_o publish_v a_o decree_n concern_v it_o require_v the_o bishop_n to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o who_o general_o answer_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o will_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o say_v he_o can_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o subscribe_v and_o have_v therefore_o be_v depose_v if_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o sudden_o die_v it_o be_v a_o weak_a and_o injudicious_a plea_n that_o of_o crakanthorp_n that_o evagrius_n be_v guilty_a of_o several_a error_n for_o let_v it_o be_v grant_v that_o he_o be_v and_o what_o historian_n be_v not_o yet_o how_o can_v he_o err_v in_o a_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n since_o he_o flourish_v at_o that_o time_n and_o be_v within_o a_o few_o year_n after_o assessor_n to_o anastasius_n successor_n since_o he_o flourish_v at_o antioch_n when_o anastasius_n himself_o be_v patriarch_n how_o can_v he_o be_v mistake_v in_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o that_o he_o intimate_v that_o he_o have_v read_v the_o speech_n which_o anastasius_n have_v compose_v and_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n when_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o emperor_n design_v to_o banish_v he_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o anastasius_n write_v epistle_n concern_v the_o emperor_n doctrine_n to_o the_o monk_n of_o syria_n who_o have_v desire_v to_o know_v his_o judgement_n among_o many_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v add_v i_o shall_v only_o mention_v that_o as_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n there_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o tome_n 832._o of_o the_o council_n a_o epistle_n from_o nicetius_n bishop_n of_o trier_n to_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n concern_v his_o lapse_n and_o in_o that_o epistle_n transmisisti_fw-la nicetius_n mention_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v for_o the_o advance_v of_o his_o erroneous_a doctrine_n banish_v certain_a bishop_n allude_v plain_o to_o the_o patriarch_n eutychius_n expulsion_n dr._n crakanthorp_n find_v that_o the_o life_n of_o eutychius_n make_v direct_o against_o his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n his_o never_o fall_v into_o heresy_n endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o that_o life_n be_v not_o write_v by_o one_o that_o live_v at_o that_o time_n but_o forge_v by_o some_o late_a monk_n and_o of_o this_o opinion_n be_v one_o of_o the_o answerer_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n he_o who_o word_n i_o but_o now_o produce_v convince_v by_o crakanthorp_n argument_n i_o need_v not_o oppose_v this_o opinion_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o justinian_n fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o that_o eutychius_n be_v depose_v for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o that_o heresy_n for_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v from_o the_o concurrent_a testimony_n of_o other_o writer_n but_o because_o i_o have_v produce_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o life_n for_o several_a other_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v from_o other_o author_n i_o be_o therefore_o oblige_v to_o clear_v the_o authority_n of_o it_o from_o the_o objection_n allege_v against_o it_o the_o chief_a argument_n bring_v against_o it_o by_o crakanthorp_n be_v its_o make_n eutychius_n to_o continue_v above_o 12_o year_n in_o banishment_n whereas_o it_o appear_v say_v he_o
the_o emperor_n rage_v with_o a_o great_a fury_n against_o his_o namesake_n the_o patriarch_n and_o have_v find_v out_o certain_a monk_n clergyman_n and_o laic_n who_o be_v the_o patriarch_n intimate_a friend_n he_o get_v they_o to_o allege_v against_o he_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v he_o speak_v against_o he_o to_o podomagulus_fw-la or_o podopagurus_fw-la a_o great_a man_n who_o the_o emperor_n have_v just_a before_o put_v to_o death_n as_o accuse_v of_o conspire_v against_o he_o and_o send_v they_o to_o the_o patriarch_n palace_n there_o to_o witness_v it_o to_o his_o face_n and_o the_o patriarch_n deny_v it_o he_o make_v they_o swear_v by_o the_o holy_a cross_n that_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o patriarch_n speak_v thus_o and_o thus_o reproachful_o of_o he_o and_o send_v some_o to_o seal_v up_o the_o gate_n of_o his_o palace_n and_o take_v he_o and_o banish_v he_o to_o hieria_n and_o after_o that_o to_o the_o prince_n island_n theophanes_n etc._n add_v that_o on_o the_o sixteen_o of_o november_n follow_v the_o emperor_n make_v nicetas_n a_o eunuch_n patriarch_n in_o constantine_n room_n he_o further_o add_v that_o on_o the_o 16_o the_o of_o 〈◊〉_d october_n next_o after_o that_o he_o send_v for_o constantine_n from_o the_o prince_n island_n and_o have_v so_o scourge_v he_o as_o that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o great_a church_n and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n be_v gather_v together_o there_o be_v a_o libel_n read_v public_o contain_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o accusation_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o he_o and_o at_o the_o read_n of_o every_o accusation_n the_o secretary_n who_o read_v it_o and_o stand_v by_o he_o strike_v he_o on_o the_o face_n etc._n the_o patriarch_n nicetas_n sit_v there_o in_o his_o throne_n by_o he_o and_o see_v all_o that_o be_v do_v then_o they_o go_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o the_o patriarch_n nicetas_n take_v the_o libel_n and_o command_v some_o bishop_n to_o take_v away_o his_o patriarchal_a cope_n from_o he_o and_o anathematise_v he_o so_o give_v he_o the_o nickname_n of_o scotiopsis_n they_o make_v he_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n backward_o after_o this_o relation_n theophanes_n give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o how_o very_o inhumane_o and_o barbarous_o they_o use_v he_o it_o appear_v from_o this_o exact_a and_o particular_a account_n that_o constantine_n be_v never_o synodical_o try_v and_o condemn_v and_o that_o nicetas_n be_v make_v patriarch_n before_o he_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o great_a church_n and_o that_o when_o he_o be_v there_o condemn_v and_o depose_v or_o degrade_v he_o be_v depose_v or_o degrade_v by_o nicetas_n himself_o who_o have_v be_v put_v into_o his_o place_n it_o likewise_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n since_o he_o still_o wear_v his_o patriarchal_a cope_n and_o be_v there_o deprive_v of_o it_o nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n etc._n give_v the_o same_o account_n of_o the_o matter_n though_o not_o so_o particular_o the_o emperor_n say_v he_o suborn_v some_o of_o the_o patriarch_n constantine_n be_v acquaintance_n to_o depose_v upon_o oath_n that_o they_o have_v hear_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o antiochus_n and_o theophylactus_n they_o have_v be_v condemn_v together_o with_o podopagurus_fw-la and_o immediate_o send_v he_o away_o as_o a_o banish_a man_n to_o hieria_n a_o imperial_a palace_n in_o asia_n over_o against_o constantinople_n and_o create_v nicetas_n the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o eunuch_n patriarch_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n indict_v 4._o not_o long_o after_o he_o send_v for_o constantine_n and_o command_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o church_n and_o together_o with_o he_o he_o send_v one_o of_o his_o own_o secretary_n with_o accusation_n against_o he_o which_o the_o secretary_n read_v before_o all_o the_o people_n there_o gather_v together_o strike_v he_o on_o the_o cheek_n at_o the_o read_n of_o every_o accusation_n and_o then_o they_o go_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o depose_v he_o the_o new_a patriarch_n read_v the_o accusation_n at_o the_o altar_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 111._o zonaras_n though_o such_o be_v the_o circumstance_n of_o nicetas_n promotion_n yet_o of_o any_o disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n occasion_v by_o it_o not_o a_o syllable_n in_o any_o author_n he_o be_v ready_o own_a by_o all_o the_o orthodox_n i._n e._n the_o iconoclast_n and_o govern_v no_o less_o than_o fourteen_o year_n as_o appear_v from_o theophanes_n and_o nicephorus_n ms._n callisti_fw-la the_o patriarch_n nicephorus_n in_o his_o chronology_n allow_v he_o fifteen_o year_n if_o you_o find_v he_o call_v by_o any_o author_n a_o pseudo-patriarch_n or_o the_o like_a it_o be_v only_o by_o such_o as_o be_v themselves_o the_o worshipper_n of_o image_n account_v he_o so_o likewise_o his_o predecessor_n himself_o a_o heretic_n and_o on_o that_o account_n no_o true_a patriarch_n chap._n fourteen_o a_o account_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o photius_n and_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n photius_n who_o be_v put_v into_o ignatius_n place_n when_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n no_o such_o person_n as_o his_o enemy_n report_v he_o by_o how_o great_a a_o party_n he_o be_v receive_v the_o reason_n why_o some_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o because_o he_o be_v so_o constitute_v as_o because_o he_o be_v a_o neophytus_n and_o be_v beside_o ordain_v by_o a_o bishop_n excommunicate_v and_o in_o their_o judgement_n stand_v himself_o excommunicate_v at_o that_o time_n ignatius_n profess_v that_o if_o photius_n have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o excommunicate_v person_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o consecration_n he_o will_v willing_o have_v yield_v to_o he_o ignatius_n value_v the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v the_o lay_n power_n the_o vindicator_n in_o a_o error_n concern_v that_o matter_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o council_n call_v the_o first_o and_o second_o a_o new_a account_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o title_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n call_v by_o p._n nicholas_n against_o photius_n photius_n after_o he_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_a council_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n yet_o his_o successor_n stephen_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o maintain_v be_v ground_v on_o the_o early_a antiquity_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n after_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian._n we_o be_v now_o fall_v into_o the_o dregs_o of_o time_n say_v one_o of_o our_o 12._o answerer_n speak_v of_o the_o seven_o and_o the_o follow_a century_n year_n of_o superstition_n idolatry_n dotario_n age_n and_o disorder_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o instance_n produce_v out_o of_o this_o age_n be_v true_o report_v and_o pertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n they_o will_v not_o be_v fit_a example_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v have_v our_o author_n know_v that_o the_o age_n of_o which_o he_o give_v this_o character_n be_v the_o age_n that_o afford_v his_o party_n their_o most_o considerable_a in_o themselves_o inconsiderable_a precedent_n we_o shall_v not_o i_o suppose_v have_v find_v he_o so_o ingenuous_a in_o his_o confession_n and_o free_a of_o his_o character_n we_o be_v now_o fall_v into_o the_o dregs_o of_o time_n it_o be_v true_a and_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o antiquity_n be_v so_o far_o lose_v as_o that_o some_o few_o instance_n may_v be_v find_v in_o these_o time_n agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o adversary_n but_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o they_o themselves_o that_o the_o example_n of_o these_o low_a age_n that_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o former_a be_v not_o fit_a example_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v in_o the_o year_n 858._o there_o break_v out_o a_o schism_n at_o constantinople_n between_o ignatius_n depose_v and_o photius_n who_o be_v constitute_v in_o his_o place_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a view_n of_o all_o this_o concern_v i_o will_v first_o present_v he_o with_o a_o short_a historical_n and_o chronological_a account_n of_o the_o chief_a transaction_n second_o i_o will_v show_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n photius_n be_v who_o accept_v of_o ignatius_n see_v that_o he_o be_v a_o virtuous_a and_o pious_a man._n three_o i_o will_v show_v by_o how_o great_a and_o numerous_a a_o party_n he_o be_v receive_v four_o that_o they_o that_o separate_v from_o he_o do_v not_o
patriarch_n photius_n refuse_v to_o give_v it_o he_o call_z him_z murderer_z for_o which_o add_v he_o the_o emperor_n be_v angry_a call_v a_o synod_n synod_n and_o depose_v he_o pretend_v this_o reason_n that_o he_o have_v be_v uncanonical_o constitute_v for_o this_o relation_n of_o zonaras_n the_o cardinal_n baronius_n be_v very_o angry_a with_o he_o 380._o haec_fw-la zonaras_n schismaticus_fw-la favens_fw-la schismatico_fw-la novam_fw-la &_o inauditam_fw-la fingens_fw-la causam_fw-la photii_fw-la ejectionis_fw-la he_o call_v he_o a_o schismatic_a as_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o in_o zonaras_n time_n be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o latin_n schismatical_a but_o what_o if_o zonaras_n be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n why_o shall_v he_o therefore_o invent_v such_o a_o lie_n against_o this_o relation_n the_o cardinal_n urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v own_o letter_n to_o pope_n nicholas_n or_o hadrian_n and_o of_o pope_n hadrian_n epistle_n to_o he_o from_o whence_o he_o say_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o emperor_n depose_v photius_n in_o obedience_n to_o pope_n nicholas_n decree_n it_o be_v true_a that_o that_o be_v his_o pretence_n and_o that_o be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v make_v out_o by_o the_o epistle_n here_o zonaras_n tell_v we_o what_o excite_v he_o to_o make_v use_n of_o such_o a_o pretence_n but_o it_o be_v not_o only_a zonaras_n as_o baronius_n think_v that_o give_v this_o account_n of_o photius_n stout_a behaviour_n towards_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v eject_v the_o same_o be_v attest_v by_o the_o chronographer_n 〈◊〉_d joel_n and_o not_o by_o he_o only_o but_o also_o by_o 〈◊〉_d leo_n grammaticus_n who_o flourish_v above_o 100_o year_n before_o zonaras_n and_o by_o georgius_n 544._o monachus_n and_o to_o these_o i_o add_v 1431._o georgius_n hamartolus_n a_o historian_n not_o yet_o publish_v who_o flourish_v at_o this_o very_a time_n and_o end_v his_o history_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o emperor_n basilius_n i_o shall_v close_v this_o paragraph_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o emperor_n 44._o constantinus_n porphyrogennetus_n who_o high_o praise_v our_o patriarch_n not_o only_o for_o his_o wisdom_n but_o likewise_o for_o his_o virtue_n and_o of_o pope_n john_n ix_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n corrupt_v basilius_n he_o there_o call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o then_o add_v we_o have_v hear_v from_o almost_o all_o people_n that_o come_v from_o constantinople_n to_o we_o that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n adorn_v with_o divine_a and_o primitive_a qualification_n and_o excellent_a above_o all_o other_o for_o his_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n in_o matter_n both_o humane_a and_o divine_a famous_a for_o all_o practical_a virtue_n and_o a_o unblameable_a observer_n of_o the_o divine_a command_n and_o we_o think_v it_o not_o just_a that_o such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o man_n shall_v continue_v without_o employment_n in_o the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v exalt_v and_o shine_v in_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v act_v as_o a_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n three_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o be_v to_o inquire_v by_o who_o and_o by_o how_o many_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n be_v receive_v as_o patriarch_n and_o by_o who_o and_o by_o how_o great_a a_o party_n reject_v he_o himself_o complain_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o bardas_n which_o he_o write_v some_o time_n after_o his_o advancement_n that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o 〈◊〉_d half_a his_o jurisdiction_n but_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v strict_o but_o as_o the_o word_n be_v common_o use_v for_o a_o great_a part_n 1._o he_o be_v receive_v by_o even_o such_o metropolitan_o as_o be_v friend_n to_o ignatius_n not_o induce_v thereunto_o by_o hatred_n against_o ignatius_n this_o appear_v from_o what_o nicetas_n and_o other_o relate_v the_o metropolitan_o say_v 〈◊〉_d nicetas_n who_o receive_v he_o as_o patriarch_n first_o make_v he_o give_v it_o under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v honour_v ignatius_n as_o his_o father_n and_o will_v do_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o will_v not_o grieve_v he_o in_o any_o thing_n by_o another_o author_n a_o great_a enemy_n of_o photius_n and_o his_o party_n we_o find_v it_o relate_v thus_o 1413._o when_o first_o bardas_n caesar_z say_v he_o attempt_v to_o eject_v the_o patriarch_n ignatius_n ignatius_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v drive_v out_o with_o ignominy_n choose_v rather_o to_o recede_v of_o himself_o but_o the_o bishop_n make_v a_o protestation_n that_o if_o bardas_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o depose_v he_o they_o will_v rather_o suffer_v the_o great_a extremity_n than_o permit_v it_o to_o be_v do_v and_o thus_o they_o keep_v ignatius_n from_o resign_v but_o when_o bardas_n afterward_o have_v depose_v he_o the_o bishop_n join_v themselves_o with_o bardas_n and_o so_o make_v themselves_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o anathema_n which_o they_o have_v pronounce_v against_o themselves_o if_o they_o shall_v permit_v ignatius_n to_o be_v depose_v then_o photius_n be_v by_o force_n thrust_v into_o the_o throne_n the_o bishop_n require_v he_o to_o give_v they_o a_o assurance_n under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v pay_v ignatius_n all_o due_a honour_n etc._n etc._n metrophanes_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n another_o great_a ignatian_n 1385._o tell_v we_o that_o photius_n be_v thrust_v into_o ignatius_n be_v throne_n by_o bardas_n all_o the_o bishop_n reject_v he_o and_o pitch_v upon_o three_o other_o as_o fit_a to_o be_v choose_v in_o ignatius_n room_n and_o in_o that_o mind_n continue_v for_o many_o day_n but_o at_o last_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v prevail_v with_o to_o accept_v of_o photius_n all_o except_z five_z of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v one_o he_o add_v that_o he_o himself_o and_o the_o other_o four_o his_o associate_n do_v at_o last_o comply_v when_o they_o see_v that_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v resolve_v to_o accept_v of_o photius_n when_o therefore_o say_v he_o he_o have_v give_v it_o under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v carry_v himself_o towards_o ignatius_n as_o towards_o a_o unblameable_a patriarch_n and_o neither_o speak_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o himself_o nor_o approve_v of_o any_o that_o shall_v do_v so_o we_o receive_v he_o be_v force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o bardas_n a_o little_a while_n after_o he_o take_v away_o the_o paper_n he_o have_v give_v we_o under_o his_o hand_n and_o depose_v ignatius_n at_o which_o time_n etc._n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o constantinople_n be_v present_a anathematise_v photius_n and_o pronounce_v he_o depose_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o also_o anathematise_v themselves_o if_o ever_o they_o shall_v own_v he_o as_o patriarch_n this_o synod_n sit_v for_o 40_o day_n together_o in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n irene_n photius_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o bardas_n get_v a_o synod_n constantinople_n together_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n depose_v ignatius_n again_o and_o anathematize_n he_o for_o which_o we_o reprove_v he_o to_o his_o face_n and_o be_v therefore_o violent_o depose_v and_o imprison_v together_o with_o ignatius_n the_o same_o author_n add_v that_o photius_n be_v condemn_v by_o five_o synod_n and_o the_o first_o of_o these_o five_o he_o make_v to_o be_v this_o at_o constantinople_n and_o again_o he_o say_v that_o it_o consist_v of_o 1392._o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o constantinople_n all_o this_o that_o he_o say_v concern_v the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n be_v a_o very_a great_a falsity_n so_o notorious_a a_o untruth_n that_o i_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o the_o author_n of_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o metrophanes_n the_o ignatian_a metropolite_n of_o smyrna_n but_o some_o late_a person_n who_o forge_v it_o in_o his_o name_n and_o this_o may_v be_v confirm_v from_o prove_v other_o error_n of_o which_o he_o be_v guilty_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o synod_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o will_v be_v easy_o grant_v by_o those_o that_o have_v read_v ignatius_n life_n write_v by_o nicetas_n his_o case_n present_v by_o theognostus_n to_o pope_n nicholas_n pope_n nicholas_n epistle_n the_o act_n of_o the_o viii_o the_o general_n council_n anastasius_n bibliothecarius_n his_o preface_n to_o it_o stylianus_n his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n steven_n i._n and_o the_o anonymous_n author_n de_fw-fr perjuriis_fw-la photianorum_n who_o though_o they_o be_v all_o great_a enemy_n to_o photius_n yet_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o synod_n have_v photius_n be_v condemn_v by_o any_o such_o synod_n we_o shall_v have_v have_v it_o everywhere_o mention_v and_o allege_v against_o he_o to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o likely_a that_o the_o emperor_n and_o bardas_n will_v suffer_v such_o a_o synod_n to_o sit_v 40_o day_n together_o
synod_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v as_o one_o part_n of_o it_o but_o that_o it_o be_v so_o call_v because_o it_o meet_v twice_o upon_o two_o different_a matter_n one_o the_o deprivation_n of_o ignatius_n and_o the_o other_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o iconoclast_n and_o have_v two_o distinct_a tome_n contain_v the_o act_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o two_o distinct_a session_n but_o how_o do_v this_o new_a account_n appear_v to_o be_v true_a i_o gather_v what_o i_o have_v assert_v from_o a_o epistle_n of_o 1068._o p._n nicolas_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o district_n of_o constantinople_n he_o there_o say_v that_o after_o ignatius_n have_v be_v condemn_v at_o constantinople_n by_o the_o synod_n in_o which_o his_o legate_n radoaldus_n and_o zacharias_n preside_v the_o emperor_n michael_n send_v he_o duo_fw-la volumina_fw-la quorum_fw-la unum_fw-la depositionis_fw-la ignatii_n gesta_fw-la continebat_fw-la alterum_fw-la autem_fw-la de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la habebat_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la acta_fw-la in_o the_o same_o epistle_n 1069._o a_o little_a after_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o council_n as_o of_o two_o distinct_a council_n because_o of_o its_o two_o distinct_a part_n and_o two_o distinct_a acta_fw-la alia_fw-la illa_fw-la concilia_fw-la quae_fw-la imminentibus_fw-la illis_fw-la radoaldo_n &_o zacharia_n legatis_fw-la praesidentibus_fw-la constantinopoli_fw-it celebrata_fw-la sunt_fw-la viz._n tam_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la adversus_fw-la patriarcham_fw-la ignatium_fw-la quam_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la pro_fw-la sacris_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la collectum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o appear_v from_o theognostus_n that_o in_o that_o session_n or_o convention_n in_o which_o ignatius_n be_v condemn_v there_o happen_v a_o great_a disturbance_n and_o sword_n be_v draw_v and_o some_o wound_v and_o this_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v that_o occasion_v that_o report_n mention_v and_o follow_v by_o zonaras_n that_o therefore_o the_o first_o convention_n break_v up_o re_fw-la infectâ_fw-la because_o the_o iconoclast_n disturb_v they_o and_o sword_n be_v draw_v and_o many_o kill_v the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o council_n consist_v of_o seven_o action_n as_o appear_v by_o nicetas_n who_o give_v a_o account_n of_o they_o all_o as_o write_v in_o a_o volume_n direct_v by_o photius_n to_o the_o western_a emperor_n ludovicus_n and_o in_o another_o which_o photius_n keep_v himself_o both_o which_o be_v seize_v by_o the_o emperor_n basilius_n and_o burn_v at_o least_o one_o of_o they_o by_o the_o general_n council_n that_o restore_v ignatius_n that_o copy_n which_o the_o legate_n radoaldus_n and_o zacharias_n bring_v with_o they_o from_o constantinople_n to_o rome_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o library_n at_o rome_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o anastasius_n bibliothecarius_n quote_v the_o act_n of_o that_o session_n which_o condemn_v ignatius_n as_o extant_a when_o he_o write_v which_o be_v some_o few_o year_n after_o i._n sicut_fw-la in_o gestis_fw-la constantinopolitanis_n ab_fw-la illis_fw-la compilatis_fw-la facile_fw-la reperitur_fw-la we_o be_v tell_v by_o nicetas_n that_o all_o this_o volume_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n which_o condemn_v ignatius_n be_v 〈◊〉_d forge_v by_o photius_n but_o that_o be_v a_o idle_a and_o a_o foolish_a calumny_n theognostus_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o patriarch_n ignatius_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o this_o council_n allege_v that_o before_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o try_v he_o they_o ought_v to_o displace_v photius_n else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v his_o judge_n to_o which_o radoaldus_n and_o zacharias_n the_o pope_n legate_n reply_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d emperor_n will_v not_o permit_v it_o to_o be_v do_v though_o they_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o canon_n yet_o because_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o permit_v it_o they_o plead_v that_o necessity_n as_o a_o sufficient_a excuse_n he_o also_o add_v that_o the_o metropolitan_o in_o that_o council_n be_v ask_v by_o the_o prince_n who_o sit_v there_o with_o they_o why_o they_o desire_v to_o have_v ignatius_n again_o for_o their_o patriarch_n 〈◊〉_d since_o they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o beginning_n oppose_v his_o deprivation_n they_o answer_v that_o two_o evil_n be_v propose_v the_o emperor_n displeasure_n and_o the_o insurrection_n of_o the_o people_n they_o choose_v the_o least_o but_o do_v you_o say_v they_o who_o be_v about_o the_o emperor_n restore_v our_o patriarch_n to_o his_o throne_n and_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v he_o here_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o they_o still_o own_a that_o ignatius_n be_v unjust_o depose_v though_o still_o they_o love_v he_o so_o much_o as_o to_o desire_v he_o shall_v be_v restore_v yet_o they_o own_o the_o present_a possessor_n because_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o suffer_v ignatius_n to_o govern_v any_o long_o four_o so_o great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o bishop_n that_o receive_v and_o acknowlege_v photius_n that_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o three_o council_n which_o be_v call_v against_o pope_n nicholas_n there_o subscribe_v no_o less_o than_o about_o a_o thousand_o the_o most_o numerous_a subscription_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o any_o council_n i_o do_v not_o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o bishop_n present_a in_o the_o council_n a_o great_a many_o of_o they_o i_o suppose_v be_v procure_v after_o the_o council_n be_v break_v up_o and_o so_o 1224._o nicetas_n seem_v to_o intimate_v but_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o about_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n subscribe_v it_o appear_v from_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o subscriptiones_fw-la anastasius_n bibliothecarius_n who_o be_v present_a in_o the_o 8_o the_o general_n council_n common_o so_o call_v where_o the_o act_n and_o subscription_n of_o this_o council_n be_v burn_v neither_o be_v it_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o constantinople_n that_o subscribe_v to_o that_o council_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o district_n be_v at_o most_o not_o above_o five_o hundred_o there_o be_v therefore_o near_o five_o hundred_o of_o the_o other_o patriarchates_n and_o there_o be_v present_a in_o that_o council_n legate_n from_o the_o three_o great_a eastern_a see_v of_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n who_o all_o subscribe_v to_o it_o i_o know_v that_o anastasius_n pretend_v that_o almost_o all_o those_o subscription_n be_v forge_v by_o photius_n and_o that_o of_o all_o that_o great_a multitude_n not_o above_o twenty_o one_o do_v real_o subscribe_v i_o know_v that_o it_o be_v common_o allege_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o photius_n as_o frequent_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o 8_o the_o council_n that_o photius_n forge_v all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n all_o the_o speech_n record_v in_o those_o act_n together_o with_o all_o the_o subscription_n but_o withal_o i_o know_v that_o there_o need_v but_o very_o little_a judgement_n to_o discover_v the_o falsity_n of_o that_o allegation_n i_o know_v that_o they_o who_o name_n be_v subscribe_v in_o this_o photian_n council_n do_v general_o deny_v before_o the_o 8_o the_o anti-photian_a council_n that_o they_o ever_o subscribe_v i_o know_v that_o the_o 1103._o metropolitan_o do_v so_o that_o 1035._o thomas_n bishop_n of_o tyre_n who_o represent_v the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n in_o this_o council_n deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n ever_o send_v to_o or_o receive_v any_o letter_n from_o photius_n that_o 1042._o elias_n who_o sit_v there_o as_o a_o legate_n from_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n express_o affirm_v more_o than_o once_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n never_o receive_v photius_n that_o she_o never_o send_v to_o he_o or_o receive_v a_o letter_n from_o he_o i_o know_v that_o he_o assert_v this_o as_o before_o god_n and_o the_o elect_a angel_n nay_o more_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o this_o photian_n council_n as_o legate_n from_o the_o three_o eastern_a patriarch_n be_v call_v before_o the_o 8_o the_o anti-photian_a council_n 1122._o do_v all_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o their_o respective_a church_n as_o legate_n that_o they_o own_v themselves_o to_o be_v mean_a person_n and_o that_o they_o be_v corrupt_v by_o photius_n all_o this_o i_o acknowledge_v and_o this_o you_o will_v say_v be_v enough_o to_o prove_v our_o patriarch_n photius_n a_o very_a great_a villain_n and_o to_o ruin_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o act_n of_o his_o council_n no_o such_o matter_n we_o need_v but_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o those_o time_n and_o then_o we_o may_v easy_o see_v that_o all_o that_o be_v deny_v be_v either_o through_o ignorance_n deny_v or_o for_o fear_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v condemn_v and_o anathematise_v by_o this_o photian_n council_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v expect_v from_o rome_n by_o those_o over_o who_o that_o proud_a and_o imperious_a church_n have_v any_o power_n but_o utter_a ruin_n deprivation_n anathema_n all_o that_o ever_o she_o can_v inflict_v the_o emperor_n basilius_n have_v depose_v the_o stout_a patriarch_n photius_n who_o
their_o leave_n of_o ignatius_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o other_o fresh_a company_n but_o for_o those_o who_o be_v not_o weary_a of_o this_o entertainment_n i_o shall_v add_v these_o follow_a remark_n 1._o i_o observe_v that_o ignatius_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v no_o more_o regard_n the_o determination_n of_o synod_n than_o they_o do_v the_o imperial_a authority_n when_o the_o suffrage_n of_o a_o council_n be_v once_o gain_v say_v 79._o the_o worthy_a and_o learned_a vindicator_n what_o art_n soever_o those_o be_v that_o be_v use_v to_o gain_v they_o photius_n have_v then_o some_o appearance_n of_o right_n till_o ignatius_n can_v relieve_v himself_o by_o another_o and_o a_o great_a council_n that_o be_v a_o lawful_a way_n of_o recover_v it_o by_o the_o very_a canon_n however_o photius_n can_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n plead_v the_o canon_n of_o his_o own_o council_n which_o condemn_v ignatius_n and_o forbid_v the_o clergy_n and_o bishop_n to_o separate_v from_o their_o present_a patriarch_n that_o none_o ought_v to_o separate_v from_o himself_o thus_o synodical_o settle_v nor_o to_o join_v with_o ignatius_n thus_o synodical_o condemn_v till_o himself_o be_v condemn_v and_o ignatius_n resettled_a by_o a_o great_a and_o a_o more_o numerous_a synod_n till_o p._n nicholas_n say_v the_o vindicator_n a_o little_a after_o have_v restore_v ignatius_n by_o a_o great_a synod_n than_o that_o be_v that_o condemn_v he_o how_o good_a soever_o his_o tible_a be_v yet_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n have_v be_v imputable_a to_o ignatius_n if_o he_o have_v make_v a_o separation_n or_o intrude_v himself_o into_o his_o own_o throne_n before_o a_o synod_n have_v restore_v he_o nay_o by_o the_o antiochian_a canon_n he_o have_v forfeit_v all_o pretension_n of_o have_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o cause_n consider_v if_o he_o have_v challenge_v any_o duty_n from_o his_o clergy_n and_o people_n before_o a_o synod_n have_v restore_v he_o he_o add_v that_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n a_o provincial_a synod_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o condemn_v or_o restore_v a_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n call_v at_o rome_n by_o p._n nicholas_n how_o numerous_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v can_v not_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o depose_v photius_n and_o restore_v ignatius_n that_o photius_n therefore_o be_v the_o canonical_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n till_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o synod_n call_v at_o constantinople_n that_o be_v great_a than_o that_o which_o depose_v ignatius_n the_o synod_n say_v he_o by_o which_o ignatius_n be_v to_o be_v relieve_v be_v to_o be_v another_o and_o that_o a_o great_a synod_n in_o the_o same_o constantinople_n and_o till_o he_o can_v get_v such_o a_o synod_n on_o his_o side_n himself_o have_v be_v responsible_a for_o the_o schism_n that_o must_v have_v follow_v on_o his_o claim_v his_o right_n thus_o much_o the_o vindicator_n and_o thus_o though_o he_o do_v not_o know_v it_o he_o perfect_o condemn_v ignatius_n and_o all_o his_o adherent_n as_o man_n not_o regard_v the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n but_o hurry_v away_o by_o their_o own_o passion_n to_o schismatical_a proceed_n we_o do_v not_o find_v say_v he_o that_o ignatius_n make_v any_o stir_n after_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n till_o he_o be_v restore_v conciliar_o in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o he_o have_v be_v deprive_v no_o then_o sure_o he_o never_o can_v find_v that_o he_o make_v any_o stir_n at_o all_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o notorious_a than_o that_o ignatius_n never_o pay_v any_o deference_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o synod_n that_o condemn_v he_o that_o he_o look_v upon_o himself_o as_o patriarch_n as_o well_o after_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o synod_n as_o before_o appear_v first_o from_o hence_o that_o after_o he_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o a_o provincial_a synod_n when_o he_o be_v summon_v to_o appear_v before_o the_o general_n council_n called_z first_o and_o second_o he_o ask_v those_o that_o summon_v he_o under_o what_o character_n they_o will_v have_v he_o appear_v as_o a_o bishop_n as_o a_o priest_n or_o as_o a_o monk_n and_o when_o it_o be_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o may_v appear_v as_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o conscience_n think_v fit_a he_o put_v on_o his_o patriarchial_a robe_n and_o be_v go_v to_o the_o council_n in_o they_o till_o messenger_n from_o the_o emperor_n meet_v he_o and_o command_v he_o to_o put_v they_o off_o or_o it_o shall_v cost_v he_o his_o life_n this_o account_n we_o have_v in_o his_o life_n 2._o when_o he_o make_v his_o appearance_n before_o that_o council_n he_o declare_v against_o their_o authority_n and_o positive_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v his_o judge_n except_o they_o first_o depose_v photius_n this_o his_o legate_n theognostus_n atte_v in_o his_o case_n present_v to_o pope_n nicholas_n 3._o after_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o this_o great_a council_n he_o still_o continue_v to_o suffer_v the_o same_o affliction_n and_o torment_n as_o before_o and_o why_o be_v he_o still_o torment_v and_o persecute_v but_o because_o he_o be_v still_o the_o same_o man_n a_o description_n of_o what_o he_o suffer_v even_o after_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o that_o council_n you_o may_v see_v at_o large_a in_o his_o life_n theognostus_n likewise_o speak_v of_o '_o they_o so_o p._n nicholas_n synod_n allege_n in_o its_o 1171._o decree_n against_o photius_n that_o he_o still_o continue_v to_o that_o very_a time_n to_o torment_v ignatius_n and_o to_o depose_v and_o punish_v those_o bishop_n that_o will_v not_o join_v with_o he_o so_o likewise_o p._n nicholas_n in_o his_o xith_o epistle_n to_o photius_n 4._o as_o soon_o as_o the_o emperor_n basilius_n have_v depose_v photius_n though_o photius_n as_o yet_o have_v never_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o council_n call_v at_o constantinople_n nor_o yet_o by_o any_o call_v any_o where_o else_o that_o be_v great_a than_o that_o which_o have_v confirm_v he_o ignatius_n ready_o accept_v of_o the_o see_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o condemn_v and_o 1232._o reject_v both_o photius_n and_o all_o those_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v as_o no_o bishop_n 5._o so_o far_o be_v the_o ignatian_o from_o regard_v the_o authority_n of_o synod_n that_o even_o after_o ignatius_n death_n though_o photius_n have_v be_v again_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_n council_n of_o no_o less_o than_o 373_o bishop_n yet_o they_o 1256._o still_o continue_v their_o schism_n and_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v nay_o even_o after_o photius_n be_v a_o second_o time_n depose_v and_o even_o after_o his_o death_n some_o of_o they_o still_o refuse_v to_o receive_v those_o who_o photius_n have_v ordain_v and_o the_o schism_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v perfect_o end_v till_o the_o tomus_fw-la vnionis_fw-la or_o synodicon_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o year_n 920._o by_o which_o there_o be_v a_o end_n likewise_o put_v to_o several_a other_o division_n in_o the_o church_n second_o i_o observe_v that_o ignatius_n and_o all_o his_o party_n be_v great_a betrayer_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a see_n that_o he_o may_v regain_v his_o see_n he_o care_v not_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o it_o but_o act_v very_o unworthy_o of_o a_o true_o great_a man_n and_o theognostus_n appeal_v from_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n thus_o betray_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o see_n and_o act_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o ii_o general_n council_n by_o which_o it_o be_v enact_v 2._o that_o the_o affair_n of_o every_o province_n shall_v be_v manage_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o that_o same_o province_n three_o in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o place_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n engage_v so_o zealous_o against_o photius_n and_o for_o the_o eject_v ignatius_n be_v chief_o because_o they_o think_v it_o concern_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o see_n the_o pope_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a judge_n in_o cause_n relate_v to_o bishop_n and_o to_o suffer_v the_o emperor_n to_o depose_v a_o patriarch_n be_v to_o give_v away_o forsooth_o his_o own_o supereminent_a prerogative_n that_o all_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v ground_v chief_o on_o their_o pride_n and_o ambition_n may_v be_v easy_o gather_v from_o their_o so_o frequent_o etc._n inculcate_v their_o prerogative_n of_o be_v the_o ultimate_a judge_n of_o all_o bishop_n in_o the_o epistle_n which_o they_o write_v concern_v this_o business_n from_o their_o so_o frequent_o inculcate_v that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v depose_v by_o any_o authority_n whatever_o whether_o imperial_a or_o synodical_a without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n because_o say_v p._n nicholas_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n
michael_n you_o the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n 1019._o have_v depose_v the_o patriarch_n ignatius_n and_o confirm_v photius_n in_o his_o see_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o apostleship_n we_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o we_o do_v not_o either_o receive_v photius_n or_o condemn_v ignatius_n and_o to_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n and_o bishop_n in_o his_o circular_a epistle_n we_o require_v you_o say_v he_o not_o to_o give_v your_o assent_n to_o the_o synod_n call_v against_o ignatius_n but_o to_o act_n according_a to_o our_o sentence_n and_o these_o thing_n we_o write_v not_o fear_v at_o all_o least_o we_o may_v have_v judge_v amiss_o for_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o any_o one_o except_o by_o he_o who_o give_v peter_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o do_v you_o that_o you_o may_v observe_v the_o ancient_a custom_n neither_o judge_n nor_o approve_v of_o any_o thing_n without_o our_o authority_n we_o have_v now_o do_v with_o the_o patriarch_n ignatius_n but_o not_o yet_o with_o photius_n he_o afford_v we_o another_o example_n for_o though_o he_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_n council_n yet_o as_o soon_o as_o leo_fw-la sapiens_fw-la upon_o his_o father_n basilius_n death_n have_v obtain_v the_o empire_n he_o be_v present_o depose_v a_o second_o time_n by_o the_o imperial_a authority_n he_o be_v thus_o depose_v the_o emperor_n brother_n stephen_n emperor_n be_v prefer_v to_o his_o see_n and_o be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n this_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n observe_v it_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o vindicator_n in_o answer_n to_o that_o treatise_n that_o photius_n be_v not_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n but_o resign_v and_o this_o he_o prove_v from_o a_o epistle_n of_o p._n stephen_n v._o ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la orient_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n say_v that_o in_o a_o letter_n the_o emperor_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o hand_n photius_n quietam_fw-la vitam_fw-la elegit_fw-la stylianus_n and_o a_o synod_n have_v write_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o acquaint_v he_o that_o photius_n for_o certain_a crime_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o emperor_n in_o a_o letter_n of_o his_o own_o have_v tell_v the_o pope_n that_o photius_n have_v resign_v this_o make_v the_o pope_n write_v that_o letter_n to_o stylianus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o know_v of_o he_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o so_o contradict_v one_o another_o stylianus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o bishop_n tell_v he_o in_o their_o answer_n that_o they_o that_o own_a photius_n as_o a_o bishop_n have_v send_v he_o word_n that_o he_o have_v resign_v but_o as_o for_o themselves_o they_o do_v not_o own_v he_o to_o have_v be_v ever_o a_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o say_v he_o have_v resign_v this_o confirm_v what_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v for_o but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o photius_n resign_v to_o i_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o be_v turn_v out_o by_o the_o emperor_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o emperor_n pretend_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o photius_n have_v resign_v be_v because_o he_o dare_v not_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o himself_o have_v depose_v he_o that_o he_o know_v the_o pope_n will_v never_o approve_v of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o stylianus_n and_o his_o bishop_n write_v after_o that_o manner_n in_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v because_o if_o they_o have_v tell_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v like_a to_o occasion_v a_o great_a disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o possimus_fw-la pope_n have_v positive_o declare_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o they_o that_o he_o will_v not_o give_v his_o consent_n that_o photius_n shall_v be_v turn_v out_o without_o his_o special_a concurrence_n but_o this_o you_o will_v say_v be_v only_a conjecture_n what_o great_a autority_n have_v we_o that_o photius_n be_v true_o depose_v i._o answer_v we_o have_v many_o 1._o that_o photius_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n be_v positive_o assert_v by_o all_o historian_n the_o emperor_n say_v etc._n joel_n for_o certain_a reason_n depose_v photius_n and_o make_v his_o own_o brother_n stephen_n patriarch_n glycas_n etc._n the_o emperor_n leo_n be_v resolve_v to_o be_v revenge_v on_o santabarenus_n bishop_n of_o euchaita_n who_o have_v set_v his_o father_n against_o he_o choose_v first_o to_o depose_v the_o patriarch_n photius_n because_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o will_v take_v santabarenus_n be_v part_n for_o there_o be_v a_o report_n that_o photius_n have_v conspire_v with_o santabarenus_n to_o advance_v one_o of_o his_o own_o family_n to_o the_o empire_n zonaras_n leo_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v make_v emperor_n be_v forthwith_o bend_v upon_o revenge_n against_o santabarenus_n but_o suspect_v that_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n who_o be_v his_o friend_n will_v take_v his_o part_n he_o etc._n invent_v accusation_n against_o the_o patriarch_n and_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o banish_v he_o to_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o armeniaci_n 2._o by_o other_o historian_n he_o be_v not_o only_o say_v to_o be_v deprive_v by_o the_o emperor_n but_o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o particular_a relation_n give_v of_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o relation_n they_o all_o unanimous_o agree_v the_o anonymous_n continuator_fw-la of_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n porphyrogennetus_n history_n give_v we_o this_o account_n of_o it_o the_o emperor_n etc._n say_v he_o send_v andrew_n the_o captain_n of_o his_o guard_n with_o joannes_n hagiopolites_n to_o the_o church_n of_o s._n sophia_n who_o there_o go_v up_o into_o the_o ambo._fw-la and_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o read_v the_o accusation_n against_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n and_o expel_v he_o out_o of_o his_o see_n and_o banish_v he_o to_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o armoniani_fw-la and_o the_o emperor_n make_v his_o own_o brother_n stephen_n the_o syncellus_n patriarch_n who_o be_v ordain_v by_o theophanes_n metropolitan_a of_o caesarea_n and_o continue_a patriarch_n six_o year_n and_o five_o month_n then_o die_v the_o emperor_n say_v etc._n leo_n grammaticus_n send_v andrew_n the_o captain_n of_o his_o guard_n and_o joannes_n hagiopolites_n the_o logotheta_n dromi_n who_o go_v up_o into_o the_o ambo._fw-la of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o read_v accusation_n against_o photius_n the_o patriarch_n and_o depose_v he_o and_o thrust_v he_o into_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o armeniani_fw-la and_o promote_v his_o own_o brother_n stephen_n to_o the_o throne_n who_o be_v ordain_v a_o little_a before_o christmas_n by_o theophanes_n the_o first_o metropolitan_a of_o caelarea_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o same_o leo_n tell_v we_o that_o photius_n 〈◊〉_d die_v in_o banishment_n the_o emperor_n leo_n say_v georgius_n cedrenus_n be_v come_v to_o the_o throne_n immediate_o resolve_v to_o be_v revenge_v on_o santabarenus_n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o set_v upon_o photius_n to_o depose_v he_o because_o he_o know_v that_o if_o he_o continue_v patriarch_n he_o will_v defend_v santabarenus_n and_o beside_o there_o be_v a_o report_n that_o photius_n have_v conspire_v with_o santabarenus_n to_o destroy_v he_o and_o to_o advance_v one_o of_o his_o own_o family_n to_o the_o imperial_a throne_n he_o according_o send_v andreas_n etc._n etc._n have_v tell_v we_o how_o he_o be_v depose_v and_o banish_v agree_v exact_o with_o the_o author_n already_o quote_v he_o add_v that_o stephen_n be_v 〈◊〉_d immediate_o constitute_v in_o his_o room_n 3._o it_o appear_v by_o the_o minute_n of_o the_o trial_n of_o photius_n and_o santabarenus_n which_o happen_v a_o little_a after_o photius_n be_v eject_v that_o photius_n have_v never_o resign_v it_o be_v expect_v at_o that_o trial_n which_o by_o the_o by_o be_v only_o before_o lay-lord_n that_o santabarenus_n will_v have_v accuse_v photius_n of_o high_a treason_n and_o he_o be_v ask_v by_o one_o of_o the_o judge_n concern_v a_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v the_o emperor_n to_o accuse_v he_o upon_o which_o he_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o knee_n before_o photius_n with_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d my_o lord_n i_o conjure_v you_o by_o god_n to_o depose_v i_o and_o degrade_v i_o from_o my_o priesthood_n and_o then_o let_v they_o punish_v i_o as_o a_o malefactor_n for_o i_o never_o tell_v the_o emperor_n any_o such_o thing_n to_o which_o photius_n make_v this_o answer_n by_o the_o salvation_n of_o my_o soul_n my_o lord_n theodorus_n you_o be_v a_o archbishop_n both_o in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v thus_o the_o continuator_fw-la of_o constantinus_n porphyrogennetus_n leo_fw-la grammamaticus_fw-la and_o cedrenus_n by_o
himself_n that_o etc._n socrates_n be_v particular_o diligent_a in_o his_o chronology_n 3._o it_o be_v not_o only_a socrates_n and_o those_o that_o follow_v he_o that_o be_v witness_n of_o what_o we_o assert_v i_o shall_v not_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o photius_n nor_o that_o of_o the_o bibl._n life_n of_o s._n athanasius_n of_o constantipolitano_n nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o histor._n nicephorus_n callisti_fw-la who_o as_o well_o as_o sozomen_n seem_v to_o have_v borrow_a from_o socrates_n but_o other_o there_o be_v who_o do_v not_o follow_v he_o 1._o it_o be_v express_o assert_v in_o the_o menology_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o our_o eustathius_n be_v a_o hundred_o year_n old_a when_o he_o die_v 2._o it_o be_v likewise_o express_o assert_v by_o 557._o theodorus_n lector_fw-la who_o be_v follow_v by_o theophanes_n that_o he_o die_v a_o hundred_o year_n before_o his_o body_n be_v translate_v from_o philippi_n to_o antioch_n by_o the_o patriarch_n calendion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o year_n long_o 482_o or_o 483_o therefore_o according_a to_o theodorus_n he_o die_v about_o the_o year_n 382._o to_o which_o time_n he_o may_v very_o well_o live_v since_o he_o be_v a_o hundred_o year_n old_a when_o he_o die_v but_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v i_o cite_v these_o autority_n when_o s._n chrysostom_n himself_o be_v my_o witness_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v of_o eustathius_n in_o his_o encomium_n he_o there_o plain_o tell_v we_o not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v live_v when_o meletius_n be_v ordain_v his_o successor_n which_o i_o wonder_v that_o neither_o baronius_n nor_o valesius_fw-la observe_v but_o likewise_o that_o he_o leave_v off_o to_o concern_v himself_o as_o a_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o orthodox_n meletius_n be_v ordain_v in_o his_o place_n etc._n god_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n permit_v the_o bless_a eustathius_n to_o be_v lead_v away_o into_o banishment_n that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o strength_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o heretic_n more_o manifest_a when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v carry_v away_o though_o he_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o city_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o cease_v to_o love_v you_o and_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o look_v upon_o himself_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o episcopal_a office_n because_o he_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o his_o church_n but_o so_o much_o the_o more_o he_o apply_v himself_o to_o take_v care_n of_o you_o and_o call_v you_o all_o together_o he_o exhort_v you_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o wolf_n or_o betray_v the_o flock_n to_o '_o they_o 〈◊〉_d when_o they_o invade_v the_o sheep_n he_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o though_o he_o be_v not_o possess_v of_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n but_o that_o his_o generous_a and_o philosophical_a soul_n do_v not_o value_n the_o honour_n of_o a_o governor_n he_o leave_v to_o other_o but_o he_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o a_o governor_n be_v conversant_a among_o wolf_n 〈◊〉_d in_o do_v thus_o he_o form_v all_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n neither_o do_v he_o desist_v till_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o bless_a meletius_n come_v hither_o and_o receive_v the_o whole_a mass_n the_o one_o sow_v and_o the_o other_o reap_v 3._o i_o observe_v that_o though_o as_o s._n chrysostom_n witness_n eustathius_n continue_v to_o act_n as_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n yet_o as_o soon_o as_o meletius_n a_o orthodox_n person_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v elect_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v the_o orthodox_n party_n very_o ready_o concur_v and_o accept_v of_o he_o though_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o they_o know_v that_o eustathius_n will_v give_v his_o consent_n how_o cheerful_o the_o orthodox_n accept_v of_o meletius_n we_o may_v read_v in_o 31._o theodoret._n there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o eustathius_n that_o stand_v out_o against_o he_o and_o refuse_v to_o own_v he_o but_o their_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o arian_n which_o that_o party_n account_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n and_o beside_o be_v by_o many_o account_v a_o arian_n himself_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o the_o 51._o vindicator_n that_o the_o only_a reason_n why_o his_o adversary_n except_v against_o he_o be_v his_o be_v ordain_v by_o arian_n but_o that_o be_v a_o very_a great_a mistake_n that_o by_o some_o he_o be_v account_v a_o arian_n even_o whilst_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n 349._o s._n basil_n complain_v 361._o s._n jerom_n himself_o express_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n or_o arian_n and_o so_o do_v the_o author_n of_o the_o 40._o chronicon_fw-la paschale_n §_o 2._o after_o some_o time_n meletius_n be_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n banish_v and_o recall_v together_o with_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n that_o have_v be_v banish_v by_o the_o emperor_n julian._n before_o he_o return_v to_o antioch_n lucifer_n calaritanus_n a_o great_a zealot_n one_o that_o do_v not_o allow_v of_o any_o one_o who_o the_o arian_n have_v ordain_v have_v be_v there_o and_o have_v ordain_v a_o presbyter_n of_o the_o eustathian_o by_o name_n paulinus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n this_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o orthodox_n do_v not_o allow_v of_o but_o refuse_v to_o receive_v he_o as_o their_o bishop_n and_o when_o their_o bishop_n meletius_n return_v adhere_v to_o he_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o 5._o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n that_o this_o example_n make_v direct_o against_o we_o for_o say_v they_o paulinus_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n and_o be_v likewise_o orthodox_n yet_o meletius_n party_n do_v not_o receive_v he_o but_o wait_v for_o his_o return_n and_o adhere_v to_o he_o but_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v urge_v against_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o maintain_v i_o shall_v not_o mention_v that_o paulinus_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o not_o orthodox_n but_o a_o 20._o sabellian_n neither_o shall_v i_o mention_v that_o his_o not_o allow_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o meletian_a clergy_n as_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o arian_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v that_o party_n oppose_v he_o i_o only_o observe_v that_o the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o promotion_n be_v extreme_o different_a from_o those_o suppose_a in_o our_o question_n 1._o lucifer_n calaritanus_n have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n what_o authority_n have_v he_o to_o constitute_v a_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n have_v meletius_n be_v dead_a the_o church_n of_o antioch_n will_v not_o have_v be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o paulinus_n who_o he_o make_v bishop_n if_o a_o outlandish_a bishop_n that_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v here_o shall_v pretend_v to_o constitute_v a_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o the_o room_n of_o a_o banish_a archbishop_n who_o can_v imagine_v that_o by_o the_o principle_n which_o we_o advance_v we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o receive_v he_o 2._o meletius_n be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n in_o banishment_n not_o make_v uncapable_a of_o serve_v as_o a_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v make_v uncapable_a by_o any_o sovereign_a power_n that_o by_o the_o emperor_n authority_n he_o have_v 5._o leave_v give_v he_o to_o return_v to_o his_o see_n and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o road._n §_o 3._o it_o be_v allege_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n that_o maximus_n a_o orthodox_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v depose_v by_o acacius_n the_o heretical_a bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o palestine_n because_o he_o take_v part_n with_o s._n athanasius_n and_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homoousion_n that_o he_o be_v so_o depose_v cyrillus_n a_o arian_n be_v constitute_v bishop_n in_o his_o room_n but_o be_v afterward_o own_a by_o the_o church_n because_o he_o come_v over_o to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n to_o this_o our_o adversary_n answer_v that_o 26._o theodoret_n and_o 349._o s._n jerom_n attest_v that_o maximus_n be_v not_o depose_v but_o dead_a before_o cyril_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o which_o they_o may_v have_v add_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o 211._o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n in_o which_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o cyril_n be_v make_v bishop_n canonical_o ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o may_v be_v allege_v that_o the_o historian_n socrates_n 38._o express_o affirm_v that_o maximus_n be_v expel_v and_o cyril_n substitute_v in_o his_o room_n by_o the_o arian_n acacius_n and_o patrophilus_n and_o that_o in_o this_o socrates_n be_v follow_v by_o many_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 49._o synodicon_n and_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o two_o life_n of_o s._n athanasius_n it_o be_v likewise_o attest_v by_o theophanes_n that_o maximus_n be_v depose_v to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o photius_n out_o of_o a_o ms._n treatise_n which_o be_v direct_o
then_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o bishop_n if_o he_o make_v a_o separation_n be_v himself_o guilty_a of_o a_o schism_n we_o will_v now_o proceed_v to_o consider_v in_o short_a the_o duty_n of_o a_o eject_v bishop_n upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o our_o late_a bishop_n that_o still_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o their_o people_n which_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o treatise_n do_v not_o as_o yet_o sufficient_o appear_v and_o for_o their_o sake_n i_o speak_v it_o may_v it_o never_o appear_v we_o will_v suppose_v if_o they_o please_v that_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n unless_o the_o eject_v bishop_n give_v his_o consent_n let_v that_o be_v suppose_v yet_o if_o the_o church_n to_o avoid_v a_o persecution_n have_v actual_o do_v it_o what_o then_o ought_v a_o good_a bishop_n to_o do_v let_v we_o consider_v a_o little_a what_o the_o consequence_n of_o a_o schism_n may_v be_v to_o be_v engage_v in_o a_o schism_n be_v according_a to_o s._n cyprian_n and_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n and_o how_o can_v a_o good_a bishop_n one_o that_o ought_v to_o lay_v down_o even_o his_o life_n for_o his_o flock_n see_v his_o people_n in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n when_o by_o only_a his_o communicate_v with_o his_o successor_n they_o may_v be_v redeem_v this_o deserve_v to_o be_v serious_o consider_v it_o be_v the_o advice_n of_o s._n clement_n bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o some_o turbulent_a person_n of_o corinth_n who_o disturb_v the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v if_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v rather_o leave_v that_o place_n than_o disturb_v the_o presbyter_n and_o hinder_v they_o in_o the_o discharge_v of_o their_o duty_n this_o place_n of_o s._n clement_n i_o former_o understand_v as_o if_o he_o have_v give_v that_o advice_n to_o the_o presbyter_n themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v rather_o withdraw_v than_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n and_o division_n and_o so_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o mistake_v it_o that_o it_o be_v acknowlege_v by_o even_o some_o of_o my_o adversary_n it_o that_o i_o right_o understand_v it_o but_o upon_o peruse_v s._n clement_n epistle_n a_o second_o time_n i_o agree_v with_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n that_o this_o be_v his_o mean_v utinam_fw-la mihi_fw-la sic_fw-la semper_fw-la disputare_fw-la contingat_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la meliora_fw-la proficiens_fw-la deseram_fw-la quod_fw-la ma●●_n tenebam_fw-la that_o i_o hearty_o say_v with_o s._n luciferianos_n jerom._n i_o can_v hearty_o wish_v that_o all_o be_v of_o the_o same_o disposition_n caeterum_fw-la scimus_fw-la quosdam_fw-la i_o use_v s._n p._n cyprian_n word_n quod_fw-la semel_fw-la imbiberunt_fw-la nolle_fw-la deponere_fw-la nec_fw-la propositum_fw-la suum_fw-la facile_fw-la mutare_fw-la that_o the_o clergy_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v unjust_o disturb_v be_v a_o thing_n we_o all_o agree_v in_o it_o be_v likewise_o certain_a that_o if_o they_o have_v injury_n do_v they_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v amends_o make_v '_o they_o but_o the_o question_n now_o be_v whether_o if_o the_o state_n have_v unjust_o depose_v they_o and_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o restore_v they_o and_o the_o church_n for_o peace-sake_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o submit_v they_o that_o be_v injure_v ought_v not_o so_o to_o acquiesce_v as_o that_o all_o people_n may_v be_v unite_v and_o the_o much_o great_a part_n retrieve_v from_o the_o spiritual_a danger_n to_o which_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a i_o have_v produce_v in_o my_o preface_n to_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n some_o example_n to_o show_v how_o tender_a good_a bishop_n have_v always_o be_v of_o their_o flock_n and_o the_o church_n peace_n they_o deserve_v to_o be_v here_o also_o mention_v when_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n be_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o great_a disturbance_n be_v raise_v in_o the_o church_n on_o his_o account_n he_o free_o surrender_v up_o his_o right_n and_o in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n thus_o address_v himself_o to_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v a_o base_a and_o unworthy_a thing_n my_o colleague_n and_o co-pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n for_o you_o who_o teach_v other_o peace_n to_o stir_v up_o among_o yourselves_o a_o intestine_a war._n for_o how_o shall_v you_o be_v able_a to_o reduce_v other_o to_o concord_n who_o differ_v and_o disagree_v among_o yourselves_o by_o the_o trinity_n itself_o i_o beseech_v you_o to_o concert_v your_o affair_n peaceable_o and_o as_o become_v you_o and_o if_o on_o my_o account_n there_o be_v any_o dissension_n i_o be_o not_o better_o than_o the_o prophet_n ionas_n throw_v i_o into_o the_o sea_n and_o so_o shall_v you_o cease_v to_o be_v toss_v by_o the_o tempest_n of_o tumult_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v think_v fit_a though_o i_o be_o not_o guilty_a of_o any_o thing_n i_o will_v willing_o endure_v it_o if_o by_o that_o mean_n there_o may_v be_v concord_n preserve_v depose_v i_o from_o my_o throne_n cast_v i_o out_o of_o the_o city_n this_o only_a i_o desire_v that_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o zacharias_n you_o will_v love_v truth_n and_o peace_n when_o nectarius_n be_v ordain_v and_o fate_n as_o his_o successor_n he_o address_v himself_o to_o he_o and_o desire_v he_o to_o take_v care_n against_o heretic_n as_o for_o my_o own_o private_a trouble_n say_v he_o i_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o reckon_v they_o among_o evil_n i_o regard_v only_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o african_a church_n be_v break_v in_o piece_n by_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n all_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o number_n of_o near_o 300_o make_v the_o donatist_n this_o offer_n that_o if_o they_o please_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o both_o party_n shall_v resign_v their_o bishopric_n and_o new_a one_o who_o both_o party_n shall_v acknowledge_v shall_v be_v choose_v in_o their_o place_n this_o offer_n they_o public_o make_v in_o the_o first_o conference_n of_o carthage_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o marcellinus_n the_o emperor_n they_o vicegerent_n for_o why_o say_v they_o i_o shall_v we_o doubt_v to_o offer_v up_o in_o our_o redeemer_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o such_o a_o humility_n do_v he_o descend_v into_o a_o human_a body_n from_o heaven_n that_o we_o may_v be_v member_n of_o he_o and_o shall_v we_o scruple_n to_o descend_v from_o our_o throne_n to_o preserve_v his_o body_n from_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o a_o cruel_a division_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o we_o be_v faithful_a and_o obedient_a christian_n let_v we_o therefore_o so_o continue_v we_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n that_o therefore_o which_o conduce_v to_o the_o peace_n of_o christ_n church_n let_v we_o do_v according_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n if_o we_o be_v profitable_a servant_n how_o can_v we_o prefer_v our_o temporal_a honour_n to_o the_o eternal_a reward_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o episcopal_a dignity_n will_v be_v more_o advantageous_a to_o we_o if_o by_o be_v resign_v it_o may_v gather_v together_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n than_o if_o it_o disperse_v it_o by_o be_v retain_v for_o with_o what_o face_n shall_v we_o hope_v for_o those_o honour_n which_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v if_o our_o pretend_v to_o our_o honour_n here_o in_o this_o world_n do_v hinder_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n who_o can_v believe_v that_o these_o great_a man_n if_o they_o have_v be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n will_v therefore_o have_v break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o successor_n it_o be_v asleep_o say_v of_o s._n dionysius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o schism_n be_v more_o to_o be_v avoid_v than_o idolatry_n itself_o because_o by_o avoid_v idolatry_n we_o consult_v only_o our_o ow●_n private_a good_a but_o by_o avoid_v schism_n we_o consult_v the_o good_a of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o he_o write_v to_o novatian_n who_o have_v set_v up_o himself_o against_o cornelius_n as_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o be_v choose_v against_o his_o will_n as_o he_o have_v pretend_v he_o ought_v to_o show_v it_o by_o resign_v voluntary_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o endure_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v not_o be_v divide_v this_o authority_n our_o adversary_n be_v please_v to_o urge_v for_o themselves_o but_o they_o do_v not_o consider_v how_o different_a their_o case_n be_v from_o that_o of_o cornelius_n they_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o cornelius_n be_v never_o depose_v be_v still_o in_o possession_n still_o own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n novatian_n
nicolaus_n p_o 147._o l._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 150._o n._n 4._o l._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 188._o n._n 4._o l._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o error_n there_o may_v be_v in_o the_o follow_a page_n which_o the_o author_n have_v not_o see_v the_o reader_n be_v desire_v to_o correct_v the_o case_n of_o see_v vacant_a by_o a_o unjust_a or_o uncanonical_a deprivation_n state_v in_o reply_n to_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o deprive_v bishop_n etc._n etc._n together_o with_o the_o several_a other_o pamphlet_n late_o publish_v as_o answer_n to_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n by_o humphrey_n hody_n d._n d._n fellow_n of_o wadh._n coll._n in_o oxford_n abstineamus_fw-la nos_fw-la à_fw-la convitiis_fw-la ne_fw-la tempus_fw-la inaniter_fw-la impendamus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la i●_n quod_fw-la agitur_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la potius_fw-la advertamus_fw-la s._n aug._n ep._n ad_fw-la pascentium_n comitem_fw-la non_fw-la ●nim_fw-la vincimur_fw-la quando_fw-la offeruntur_fw-la nobis_fw-la meliora_fw-la sed_fw-la instruimur_fw-la maximè_fw-la in_o his_o qua_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la unitatem_fw-la pertinent_a &_o spei_fw-la &_o fidei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la veritatem_fw-la s._n cypr._n london_n print_v by_o i._n h._n for_o henry_n mortlock_n at_o the_o phoenix_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdcxciii_o imprimatur_fw-la geo._n royse_n r._n r_o mo_z in_o christo_fw-la patri_fw-la ac_fw-la d_o no_o d_o no_o johanni_n archiep._n cantuar_n à_fw-la sacris_fw-la dome_v decemb._n 1._o 1692._o to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n john_n by_o divine_a providence_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_z his_o grace_n primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n this_o treatise_n be_v design_v for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n as_o at_o present_a establish_v i_o presume_v to_o make_v your_o grace_n this_o humble_a offer_n of_o it_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o subject_n deserve_v a_o more_o able_a manager_n but_o my_o lord_n that_o favourable_a acceptance_n with_o which_o you_o be_v please_v to_o honour_v the_o baroccian_a treatise_n have_v encourage_v i_o to_o hope_n that_o your_o grace_n will_v likewise_o be_v please_v to_o accept_v of_o these_o endeavour_n and_o to_o excuse_v and_o pardon_v the_o defect_n of_o your_o grace_n most_o dutiful_a servant_n humphrey_n hody_n to_o the_o reader_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o they_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o account_n of_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v oblige_v to_o make_v out_o to_o justify_v themselves_o from_o the_o charge_n of_o schism_n 1._o that_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v no_o authority_n in_o any_o case_n whatever_o to_o deprive_v a_o bishop_n of_o his_o see_n 2._o that_o no_o bishop_n that_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o depose_v by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n ought_v to_o be_v own_a if_o they_o can_v make_v out_o both_o these_o proposition_n they_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o if_o we_o may_v lawful_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o deprive_v by_o the_o civil_a power_n though_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o deprive_v it_o must_v thence_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n on_o such_o a_o account_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v justify_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n when_o we_o may_v lawful_o communicate_v with_o it_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o case_n be_v quite_o different_a they_o that_o own_o the_o present_a possessor_n in_o opposition_n to_o one_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v to_o justify_v their_o adherence_n to_o he_o oblige_v to_o make_v out_o but_o only_o one_o thing_n either_o 1._o that_o the_o civil_a power_n may_v lawful_o deprive_v a_o bishop_n of_o his_o see_v for_o crime_n or_o repute_v crime_n pure_o political_a such_o as_o be_v here_o suppose_v or_o 2._o that_o if_o it_o can_v lawful_o do_v so_o yet_o if_o it_o have_v actual_o do_v it_o and_o another_o unexceptionable_a on_o all_o other_o account_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o see_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o peace-sake_n to_o own_o the_o possessor_n this_o advantage_n we_o have_v of_o our_o adversary_n the_o baroccian_a treatise_n which_o i_o late_o publish_v be_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o last_o proposition_n it_o suppose_v that_o bishop_n deprive_v uncanonical_o whether_o by_o prince_n only_o or_o by_o synod_n it_o produce_v example_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v unjust_o and_o invalid_o deprive_v yet_o show_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v on_o that_o account_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o present_a possessor_n never_o be_v a_o poor_a treatise_n more_o hardly_o and_o severe_o use_v by_o its_o adversary_n than_o that_o have_v be_v this_o be_v a_o proposition_n that_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o aware_a of_o they_o be_v therefore_o high_o concern_v to_o employ_v all_o their_o art_n to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o treatise_n but_o for_o all_o the_o hard_a name_n they_o have_v so_o liberal_o bestow_v upon_o it_o they_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v by_o their_o practice_n that_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o strength_n if_o to_o be_v oppose_v by_o seven_o several_a answerer_n the_o latter_a not_o satisfy_v with_o what_o the_o former_a have_v urge_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o strength_n in_o a_o treatise_n we_o may_v still_o believe_v and_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o find_v it_o out_o at_o this_o juncture_n have_v something_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o it_o i_o presume_v the_o reader_n will_v expect_v i_o shall_v give_v he_o some_o account_n of_o these_o seven_o several_a answer_n which_o have_v be_v publish_v against_o it_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o the_o title_n of_o they_o in_o the_o same_o order_n as_o they_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n 1._o the_o oxford_n antiquity_n examine_v etc._n etc._n 2._o a_o answer_n to_o a_o treatise_n out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n translate_v from_o a_o ancient_a greek_n ms._n in_o the_o public_a library_n at_o oxford_n by_o humphrey_n hody_n b._n d._n etc._n etc._n 3._o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la humfredum_fw-la hody_n etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr tractatu_fw-la à_fw-la scriniis_fw-la baroccianis_fw-la bibliothecae_fw-la bodleianae_n eruto_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la illo_fw-la nuper_fw-la edito_fw-la conscripta_fw-la 4._o a_o far_a account_n of_o the_o baroccian_a ms._n late_o publish_v at_o oxford_n 5._o reflection_n on_o the_o greek_a ms._n translate_v by_o mr._n hody_n this_o be_v not_o print_v but_o be_v put_v into_o my_o hand_n in_o a_o ms._n 6._o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o deprive_v bishop_n assert_v their_o spiritual_a right_n against_o a_o lay-deprivation_n against_o the_o charge_n of_o schism_n etc._n etc._n these_o six_o be_v profess_o and_o entire_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n but_o the_o author_n of_o this_o last_o mention_v be_v i_o know_v not_o how_o so_o unhappy_a as_o to_o mistake_v the_o question_n he_o write_v against_o the_o treatise_n as_o if_o the_o design_n of_o it_o be_v to_o vindicate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n in_o deprive_v bishop_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o design_n of_o the_o treatise_n neither_o be_v it_o my_o design_n in_o publish_v it_o and_o from_o this_o strange_a mistake_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o what_o that_o author_n say_v be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n 7._o unity_n of_o priesthood_n necessary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o the_o oxford_n ms._n and_o the_o preface_n annex_v the_o vindication_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n in_o deprive_v a_o bishop_n for_o political_a crime_n i_o reserve_v for_o a_o particular_a treatise_n my_o business_n at_o present_a be_v to_o manage_v the_o last_o proposition_n that_o advance_v by_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n in_o reply_n to_o these_o several_a answer_n i_o here_o present_a our_o adversary_n with_o a_o impartial_a history_n of_o the_o church_n behaviour_n throughout_o all_o age_n under_o bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o depose_v by_o a_o lay_v or_o otherwise_o invalid_n sentence_n i_o grant_v at_o present_a that_o all_o lay-deprivations_a be_v invalid_a i_o suppose_v the_o worst_a in_o all_o case_n suppose_v the_o deprivation_n be_v not_o only_o uncanonical_a but_o also_o unjust_a suppose_v the_o depriver_n not_o only_o a_o layman_n but_o double_o unqualify_v by_o be_v likewise_o a_o heretic_n suppose_v beside_o that_o the_o eject_v bishop_n be_v deprive_v for_o adhere_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o oppose_a vice_n or_o heresy_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o i_o assert_v that_o if_o he_o be_v deprive_v by_o a_o power_n irresistible_a a_o submission_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n if_o otherwise_o unexceptionable_a
be_v lawful_a and_o warrant_v by_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n it_o be_v not_o my_o design_n to_o detain_v my_o reader_n long_o in_o a_o preface_n only_o one_o or_o two_o thing_n i_o desire_v of_o he_o if_o any_o thing_n here_o in_o this_o treatise_n seem_v long_o and_o tedious_a to_o he_o i_o desire_v he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o my_o design_n be_v to_o make_v this_o discourse_n as_o perfect_a as_o i_o can_v that_o so_o if_o possible_a it_o may_v put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o controversy_n and_o if_o our_o adversary_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o publish_v a_o reply_n to_o what_o be_v here_o write_v i_o desire_v he_o will_v serious_o compare_v and_o weigh_v one_o treatise_n with_o the_o other_o consider_v if_o the_o main_a and_o more_o substantial_a part_n of_o this_o treatise_n be_v answer_v then_o judge_v for_o himself_o and_o not_o expect_v that_o of_o course_n there_o must_v be_v another_o reply_n as_o i_o be_o not_o so_o vain_a as_o to_o think_v myself_o clear_a from_o error_n so_o neither_o be_o i_o conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o have_v be_v so_o careless_a and_o indiligent_a as_o to_o think_v i_o be_o often_o mistake_v i_o mean_v in_o thing_n material_a i_o hate_v everlasting_a wrangle_n and_o a_o adversary_n that_o cavil_v and_o except_v against_o thing_n not_o material_a i_o shall_v think_v deserve_v a_o reply_n as_o little_a as_o one_o that_o rail_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a i_o know_v to_o persuade_v our_o adversary_n that_o the_o history_n i_o here_o present_v they_o be_v what_o i_o call_v it_o impartial_a but_o this_o assurance_n i_o give_v they_o i_o have_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o i_o myself_o believe_v that_o may_v be_v perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v but_o you_o have_v not_o write_v all_o that_o you_o believe_v you_o have_v not_o tell_v all_o you_o know_v why_o true_o as_o to_o that_o i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o answer_v since_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n be_v so_o extreme_o different_a as_o that_o some_o have_v fansy_v that_o the_o canon_n i_o omit_v when_o i_o publish_v the_o baroccian_a treatise_n be_v real_o a_o part_n of_o that_o treatise_n and_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v publish_v with_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o impertinent_a but_o what_o some_o or_o other_o may_v fancy_n i_o ought_v to_o have_v mention_v i_o can_v promise_v but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v more_o canon_n but_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v suspect_v that_o though_o i_o have_v produce_v many_o instance_n for_o the_o cause_n i_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v there_o be_v other_o as_o good_a and_o as_o many_o that_o make_v against_o we_o which_o i_o have_v design_o conceal_v i_o shall_v here_o make_v this_o solemn_a declaration_n that_o if_o any_o of_o our_o adversary_n i_o speak_v to_o all_o in_o general_n but_o my_o eye_n be_v particular_o upon_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n can_v produce_v i_o any_o one_o single_a instance_n from_o the_o time_n of_o aaron_n the_o first_o highpriest_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o this_o very_a day_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n disow_v by_o the_o jew_n or_o a_o bishop_n disow_v by_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n if_o they_o can_v show_v i_o i_o say_v any_o one_o single_a instance_n i_o shall_v own_v myself_o oblige_v for_o the_o instruction_n i_o assure_v my_o reader_n that_o after_o a_o nice_a and_o very_a curious_a search_n i_o know_v not_o one_o shall_v our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o produce_v such_o a_o example_n as_o i_o think_v they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a it_o will_v advantage_v their_o cause_n but_o little_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o late_a age_n since_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n but_o if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o single_a example_n how_o rash_o have_v they_o act_v who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n on_o such_o a_o account_n i_o conclude_v in_o the_o word_n of_o drusius_n which_o i_o here_o make_v my_o own_o scripsi_fw-la haec_fw-la animo_fw-la juvandi_fw-la non_fw-la laedendi_fw-la si_fw-mi laesi_fw-la quempiam_fw-la jam_fw-la i_o poenitet_fw-la si_fw-mi offendi_fw-la pias_fw-la aures_fw-la monitus_fw-la lubenter_fw-la mutabo_fw-la si_fw-mi erravi_fw-la uspiam_fw-la monstretur_fw-la mihi_fw-la error_n non_fw-la ero_fw-la pertinax_fw-la ☞_o pag._n 5._o lin_v 40._o whatsoever_o be_v notorious_o repugnant_a to_o the_o church_n interest_n so_o as_o to_o be_v necessary_o productive_a of_o very_o great_a evil_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v oblige_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sin_n to_o act_v according_a to_o it_o lest_o that_o proposition_n shall_v be_v misunderstand_v after_o the_o word_n of_o very_o great_a evil_n add_v i_o speak_v of_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n the_o content_n chap._n i._n the_o reasonableness_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n if_o otherwise_o unexceptionable_a though_o the_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o or_o invalid_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n demonstrate_v objection_n answer_v no_o obligation_n to_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n unreasonable_o allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n the_o vindicator_n notion_n of_o heresy_n not_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n page_n 1._o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v all_o along_o own_a and_o receive_v as_o true_a high-priest_n a_o account_n of_o all_o those_o high-priest_n from_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n solomon_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o instance_n of_o abiathar_n and_o zadok_v nice_o examine_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o god_n approbation_n of_o such_o high-priest_n a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o we_o page_n 16._o chap._n iii_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n acknowlege_v and_o communicate_v with_o those_o high-priest_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n as_o true_a high-priest_n mr._n selden_n conjecture_n that_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o highpriest_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o the_o highpriest_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o sanhedrin_n confute_v a_o reply_n to_o a_o answer_n of_o our_o adversary_n concern_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o jew_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n page_n 33._o chap._n iu._n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n submit_v all_o along_o to_o such_o bishop_n if_o account_v orthodox_n as_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o other_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n though_o never_o so_o unjust_o no_o example_n either_o for_o or_o against_o we_o in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n all_o the_o emperor_n be_v then_o heathen_n the_o example_n of_o felix_n ii_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o liberius_n unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n and_o against_o liberius_n consent_n yet_o he_o be_v own_a by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n by_o the_o roman_a clergy_n among_o they_o by_o the_o famous_a damasus_n who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n he_o be_v own_a as_o metropolitan_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o district_n of_o rome_n his_o ordination_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o valid_a by_o even_o his_o adversary_n liberius_n he_o have_v be_v all_o along_o own_a by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n and_o true_a pope_n page_n 40._o chap._n v._n the_o catholic_n of_o alexandria_n reject_v lucius_n because_o he_o be_v a_o arian_n not_o because_o his_o predecessor_n peter_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n our_o adversary_n doctrine_n not_o know_v to_o the_o say_v peter_n §_o 1._o s._n briccius_n of_o tours_n depose_v by_o the_o people_n yet_o justinian_n and_o armentius_n his_o successor_n be_v own_a as_o true_a bishop_n of_o tours_n armentius_n be_v own_a as_o true_a bishop_n by_o s._n briccius_n himself_o though_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n but_o have_v always_o claim_v it_o §_o 2._o s._n euthymius_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o theodosius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o have_v imbrue_v his_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o person_n not_o because_o the_o patriarch_n juvenalis_n who_o see_v he_o have_v usurp_v be_v still_o live_v theodosius_n ordination_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o valid_a §_o 3._o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o timotheus_n aelurus_n not_o because_o he_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o timotheus_n salofuciolus_fw-la unjust_o depose_v by_o
the_o heretical_a usurper_n basiliscus_n but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o parricide_n §_o 4._o jo._n talaias_n the_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n though_o he_o still_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o see_v yet_o petrus_n mongus_n his_o successor_n be_v acknowlege_v by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n by_o acacius_n and_o fravitas_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o martyrius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n that_o they_o who_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o mongus_n viz._n the_o western_a bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o dardania_n etc._n etc._n do_v it_o only_o because_o they_o think_v he_o a_o heretic_n that_o euphemius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n communicate_v with_o he_o till_o he_o find_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n than_o forsake_v his_o communion_n pope_n simplicius_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o talaias_n be_v to_o be_v depose_v be_v well_o enough_o satisfy_v till_o he_o understand_v that_o mongus_n who_o he_o account_v a_o heretic_n be_v design_v for_o his_o successor_n whether_o orthodox_n bishop_n unjust_o eject_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v restore_v or_o new_a orthodox_n bishop_n be_v create_v he_o value_v not_o he_o only_o desire_v that_o they_o that_o be_v make_v bishop_n shall_v be_v orthodox_n pope_n felix_n iii_o not_o at_o all_o concern_v for_o talaias_n be_v deprive_v without_o a_o synod_n only_o dislike_v that_o one_o who_o he_o account_v a_o heretic_n be_v constitute_v in_o his_o place_n §_o 5._o calendion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n without_o any_o synod_n the_o orthodox_n bishop_n viz._n pope_n felix_n iii_o quintianus_n asculanus_n justinus_n siculus_n acacius_n constantinopolitanus_n antheon_n arsinoite_n faustus_n apolloniates_n pamphilus_n abydensis_n asclepiades_fw-la of_o trallium_n etc._n etc._n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o his_o successor_n petrus_n gnapheus_n only_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o his_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o unsynodical_o depose_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o communicate_v with_o he_o as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n if_o he_o will_v but_o forsake_v his_o heresy_n page_n 57_o chap._n vi_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n anastasius_n his_o successor_n timotheus_n be_v acknowlege_v by_o all_o that_o account_v he_o orthodox_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o profess_v that_o the_o deprivation_n of_o macedonius_n be_v unjust_a and_o can_v never_o be_v induce_v by_o any_o terror_n to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o viz._n by_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n elias_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o studium_fw-la the_o orthodox_n people_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o great_a abbot_n of_o palestine_n s._n sabas_n and_o s._n theodosius_n and_o by_o all_o palestine_n in_o general_a at_o that_o time_n exceed_o flourish_v for_o its_o zealous_a profession_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n the_o calumny_n of_o the_o vindicator_n concern_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o patriarch_n flavianus_n and_o elias_n confute_v timotheus_n not_o know_v to_o they_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n when_o they_o communicate_v with_o he_o they_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n page_n 70._o chap._n vii_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n his_o successor_n severus_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o orthodox_n only_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n elias_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o say_a emperor_n his_o successor_n john_n be_v immediate_o acknowlege_v by_o all_o the_o people_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o hate_v he_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o palestine_n particular_o the_o two_o great_a abbot_n s._n sabas_n and_o s._n theodosius_n so_o famous_a for_o their_o vndauntedness_n and_o sanctity_n by_o johannes_n cappadox_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n ever_o since_o those_o tune_n the_o testimony_n of_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n out_o of_o a_o manuscript_n the_o old_a patriarch_n elias_n though_o so_o tyrannical_o deprive_v for_o adhere_v to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n continue_v however_o to_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o acknowlege_v his_o successor_n page_n 81._o chap._n viii_o s._n silverius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o belisarius_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n general_n his_o successor_n vigilius_n though_o put_v into_o his_o place_n so_o deprive_v though_o constitute_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o belisarius_n against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o though_o silverius_n never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o the_o 5_o general_n council_n and_o by_o all_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a pope_n he_o be_v general_o own_a whilst_o silverius_n himself_o be_v live_v baronius_n conjecture_n concern_v his_o be_v again_o ordain_v after_o silverius_n death_n confute_v though_o for_o some_o time_n he_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o orthodox_n who_o communicate_v with_o he_o page_n 90._o chap._n ix_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n his_o successor_n eustochius_n be_v own_a as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n by_o the_o five_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n after_o some_o time_n eustochius_n himself_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o macarius_n be_v restore_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n principle_n either_o eustochius_n or_o macarius_n after_o his_o restauration_n be_v no_o true_a patriarch_n yet_o the_o church_n receive_v both_o page_n 97._o chap._n x._o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v violent_o depose_v by_o the_o emp._n justinian_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o his_o heresy_n john_n surname_v scholasticus_n be_v make_v patriarch_n in_o his_o room_n after_o john_n be_v consecrate_v patriarch_n eutychius_n be_v condemn_v by_o a_o assembly_n that_o consist_v as_o well_o of_o lay_v lord_n as_o bishop_n not_o only_o of_o ecclesiastic_n as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v he_o actual_o lay_v claim_v to_o the_o see_v despise_v the_o sentence_n of_o his_o judge_n as_o null_n and_o invalid_a because_o they_o proceed_v unjust_o and_o uncanonical_o against_o he_o and_o excommunicate_v they_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o his_o successor_n because_o he_o prove_v orthodox_n be_v receive_v and_o own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n he_o continue_v in_o the_o see_v near_o 13_o year_n near_o 12_o year_n under_o justin_n the_o young_a a_o orthodox_n emp._n he_o be_v own_a by_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n eutychius_n be_v exceed_o belove_v john_n a_o orthodox_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v consecrate_v by_o he_o for_o what_o reason_n anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n reprove_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o be_v ordain_v by_o he_o anastasius_n do_v not_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o he_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n though_o eutychius_n look_v upon_o his_o deprivation_n as_o absolute_o invalid_a and_o though_o he_o never_o resign_v but_o account_v himself_o still_o the_o rightful_a patriarch_n yet_o he_o live_v quiet_o and_o never_o endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n dr._n crakanthorp_n opinion_n that_o eutychius_n be_v depose_v for_o be_v a_o heretic_n confute_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o life_n of_o eutychius_n often_o quote_v in_o this_o chapter_n vindicate_v against_o the_o same_o author_n page_n 101._o chap._n xi_o s._n anastasius_n senior_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n justin_n junior_a though_o he_o never_o resign_v yet_o his_o successor_n gregory_n be_v own_a by_o all_o the_o church_n he_o continue_v patriarch_n till_o his_o death_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 23_o year_n the_o old_a patriarch_n anastasius_n be_v all_o the_o while_n live_v four_o saint_n among_o those_o that_o live_v at_o that_o time_n and_o communicate_v free_o with_o he_o s._n symeon_n stylites_n junior_a pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a s._n eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n s._n john_n nesteutes_fw-gr patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n pope_n gregory_n communicate_v with_o he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o declare_v anastasius_n deprivation_n to_o be_v invalid_a and_o look_n upon_o anastasius_n to_o be_v the_o rightful_a patriarch_n s._n anastasius_n though_o depose_v by_o the_o lay-power_n and_o though_o he_o have_v never_o give_v up_o his_o right_n yet_o never_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 121._o chap._n xii_o s._n martin_n pope_n of_o rome_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n
and_o banish_v by_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n constans_n though_o he_o never_o resign_v yet_o eugenius_n be_v choose_v his_o successor_n by_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o be_v zealous_a assertor_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o have_v likewise_o a_o great_a love_n for_o s._n martin_n eugenius_n be_v receive_v and_o own_a by_o all_o as_o a_o true_a pope_n and_o have_v be_v honour_v all_o along_o by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o saint_n s._n martin_n himself_o own_v he_o as_o a_o true_a pope_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o he_o as_o such_o page_n 128._o chap._n xiii_o callinicus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n justinianus_n rhinotmetus_n his_o successor_n cyrus_n be_v receive_v as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n §_o 1._o so_o likewise_o be_v nicetas_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o patriarch_n constantine_n depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n copronymus_n §_o 2._o page_n 135._o chap._n fourteen_o a_o account_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o photlus_fw-la and_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n photius_n who_o be_v put_v into_o ignatius_n place_n when_o depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n no_o such_o person_n as_o his_o enemy_n report_v he_o by_o how_o great_a a_o party_n he_o be_v receive_v the_o reason_n why_o some_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o because_o he_o be_v so_o constitute_v as_o because_o he_o be_v a_o neophytus_n and_o be_v beside_o ordain_v by_o a_o bishop_n excommunicate_v and_o in_o their_o judgement_n stand_v himself_o excommunicate_v at_o that_o time_n ignatius_n profess_v that_o if_o photius_n have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o excommunicate_v person_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o consecration_n he_o will_v willing_o have_v yield_v to_o he_o ignatius_n value_v the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v the_o lay_n power_n the_o vindicator_n in_o a_o error_n concern_v that_o matter_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o council_n call_v the_o first_o and_o second_o a_o new_a account_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o title_n his_o error_n concern_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n call_v by_o p._n nicholas_n against_o photius_n photius_n after_o he_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_a council_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n yet_o his_o successor_n stephen_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n page_n 139._o chap._n xv._n nicolaus_n mysticus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n not_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v but_o by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o wife_n §_o 1._o joseph_n bishop_n of_o brixia_n in_o italy_n depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o king_n berengarius_fw-la yet_o his_o successor_n antony_n be_v own_a and_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n particular_o by_o the_o pope_n the_o synod_n of_o augspurg_n and_o ravenna_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o see_v many_o year_n §_o 2._o basilius_n camaterus_n and_o nicetas_n muntanes_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n depose_v without_o any_o synod_n by_o the_o emperor_n isaacius_n angelus_n yet_o no_o division_n in_o the_o church_n on_o their_o account_n §_o 3_o 4._o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o present_a greek_a church_n very_o frequent_o deprive_v by_o the_o turk_n yet_o no_o division_n in_o the_o church_n as_o great_a reason_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n here_o as_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o necessity_n the_o same_o page_n 170._o chap._n xvi_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o uncanonical_a synod_n esteem_v by_o the_o ancient_n invalid_a s._n chrysostom_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n unjust_o and_o invalid_o depose_v by_o a_o synod_n he_o declare_v however_o at_o first_o against_o all_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n on_o his_o account_n he_o afterward_o yield_v to_o resentment_n and_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o his_o successor_n arsacius_n and_o atticus_n because_o they_o have_v be_v his_o enemy_n and_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o his_o deprivation_n the_o joannite_v act_v by_o their_o passion_n not_o by_o principle_n they_o separate_z from_o the_o church_n not_o because_o there_o be_v another_o make_a patriarch_n in_o s._n chrysostom_n place_n but_o before_o that_o be_v do_v arsacius_n be_v make_v patriarch_n they_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o not_o because_o he_o be_v put_v into_o s._n chrysostom_n place_n but_o through_o hatred_n against_o st._n chrysostom_n deposer_n because_o they_o frequent_v his_o church_n pope_n innocent_a of_o rome_n not_o consistent_a with_o himself_o his_o practice_n contradict_v his_o word_n he_o do_v not_o think_v arsacius_n and_o atticus_n no_o bishop_n his_o zeal_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o own_o see_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o his_o oppose_v '_o they_o he_o at_o last_o receive_v atticus_n as_o a_o true_a patriarch_n the_o vindicator_n exception_n against_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n confute_v the_o eastern_a bishop_n refuse_v to_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n though_o s._n chrysostom_n lay_v claim_v to_o his_o see_n and_o actual_o separate_v and_o though_o they_o esteem_v his_o deprivation_n invalid_a so_o do_v the_o monk_n of_o egypt_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n nicon_n out_o of_o a_o ms._n s._n nicon_n himself_o though_o he_o esteem_v his_o deprivation_n extreme_o unjust_a yet_o approve_v of_o those_o that_o do_v not_o separate_v on_o his_o account_n s._n chrysostom_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v as_o a_o thing_n of_o course_n that_o all_o will_v immediate_o resolve_v to_o choose_v a_o new_a patriarch_n in_o his_o room_n the_o patriarch_n atticus_n high_o esteem_v by_o the_o whole_a african_a church_n the_o ecclesiastical_a historian_n socrates_n disapprove_v of_o s._n chrysostom_n deprivation_n yet_o speak_v of_o arsacius_n and_o atticus_n as_o of_o true_a patriarch_n theodoret_n extreme_o offend_v at_o the_o injustice_n of_o his_o deposer_n yet_o reckon_v both_o arsacius_n and_o atticus_n among_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n they_o be_v both_o own_a in_o all_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o patriarch_n their_o ordination_n never_o question_v by_o any_o atticus_n praise_v by_o p._n celestine_n i._n and_o own_v to_o be_v a_o true_a successor_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n page_n 176._o chap._n xvii_o deprivation_n by_o heretical_a synod_n invalid_a s._n eustathius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n depose_v by_o a_o heretical_a synod_n he_o himself_o account_v his_o deprivation_n invalid_a the_o orthodox_n separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o successor_n not_o because_o he_o be_v invalid_o deprive_v but_o because_o they_o account_v they_o heretic_n eustathius_n act_n as_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n though_o in_o banishment_n as_o long_o as_o his_o successor_n be_v heretic_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o meletius_n a_o orthodox_n person_n be_v ordain_v his_o successor_n he_o desist_v and_o concern_v himself_o no_o more_o as_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n that_o he_o live_v till_o meletius_n be_v make_v patriarch_n demonstrate_v against_o baronius_n valesius_fw-la etc._n etc._n why_o some_o of_o the_o orthodox_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o meletius_n the_o vindicator_n assertion_n that_o none_o account_v meletius_n a_o arian_n whilst_o he_o be_v bishop_n confute_v the_o schism_n between_o the_o meletian_o and_o the_o paulinist_n no_o example_n against_o we_o §_o 1_o 2._o the_o instance_n of_o maximus_n and_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n examine_v §_o 3._o euphemius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n depose_v by_o a_o heretical_a synod_n yet_o macedonius_n a_o orthodox_n and_o a_o good_a man_n accepts_z of_o his_o see_v though_o he_o own_a he_o to_o be_v the_o rightful_a patriarch_n macedonius_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o catholic_n though_o they_o love_v euphemius_n and_o account_v he_o unjust_o deprive_v he_o be_v own_a by_o s._n elias_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n though_o elias_n at_o the_o same_o time_n declare_v euphemius_n deprivation_n unjust_a and_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o §_o 4._o the_o schism_n of_o the_o novatian_o donatist_n and_o meletian_o of_o egypt_n no_o example_n against_o we_o §_o 5._o two_o fragment_n of_o photius_n out_o of_o a_o m_o s._n §_o 1_o 3._o page_n 186._o chap._n xviii_o the_o conclusion_n bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n oblige_v even_o in_o common_a charity_n to_o acquiesce_v but_o whether_o they_o acquiesce_v or_o not_o the_o church_n be_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n page_n 196._o the_o case_n of_o see_v vacant_a by_o a_o unjust_a or_o uncanonical_a deprivation_n state_v etc._n etc._n chap._n i._n the_o reasonableness_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n if_o otherwise_o unexceptionable_a though_o the_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o or_o invalid_o depose_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n demonstrate_v objection_n answer_v no_o obligation_n
with_o death_n the_o bishop_n however_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v and_o so_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n without_o any_o consent_n of_o they_o but_o after_o he_o be_v ordain_v say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o pontifical_a they_o subscribe_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o religion_n though_o the_o synod_n of_o c_o p._n before_o who_o the_o patriarch_n alexius_n be_v accuse_v for_o his_o have_v be_v promote_v to_o that_o dignity_n by_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n without_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o clergy_n look_v upon_o his_o promotion_n to_o be_v altogether_o unlawful_a yet_o when_o he_o plead_v that_o he_o have_v ordain_v many_o bishop_n and_o that_o if_o they_o deprive_v he_o they_o must_v likewise_o deprive_v all_o those_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v upon_o that_o bare_a 190._o consideration_n because_o to_o deprive_v so_o many_o be_v likely_a to_o occasion_v a_o great_a disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n they_o overrule_v the_o accusation_n and_o determine_v nothing_o against_o he_o when_o calendion_n be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n and_o ordain_v by_o acacius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o c_o p._n though_o that_o imp._n be_v unlawful_a by_o the_o 4._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o constant_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v do_v as_o the_o emperor_n and_o acacius_n allege_v to_o avoid_v sedition_n in_o antioch_n the_o proceed_v be_v approve_v of_o by_o simplicius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o i_o wish_v reatum_fw-la say_v he_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v yet_o i_o easy_o excuse_v it_o because_o it_o be_v do_v through_o necessity_n for_o that_o which_o be_v not_o voluntary_a i.e._n that_o which_o be_v do_v only_o for_o convenience_n or_o necessity_n be_v sake_n can_v be_v impute_v as_o a_o fault_n these_o example_n and_o autority_n may_v serve_v to_o show_v in_o general_n that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n so_o sacred_a but_o what_o our_o wise_a forefather_n think_v aught_o to_o be_v postpone_v to_o the_o present_a welfare_n and_o prosperity_n of_o it_o that_o the_o same_o be_v their_o opinion_n in_o reference_n to_o our_o particular_a case_n we_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v in_o its_o due_a place_n §_o 4._o our_o proposition_n be_v thus_o establish_v on_o that_o sure_a maxim_n acknowledge_v as_o have_v be_v show_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o provide_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o sinful_a and_o that_o the_o ill_a consequence_n which_o may_v possible_o attend_v it_o be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o make_v out_o first_o that_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o sinful_a and_o two_o that_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o it_o be_v liable_a be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v §_o 5._o first_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o sinful_a for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o must_v be_v so_o for_o one_o or_o more_o of_o these_o follow_a reason_n either_o first_o because_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o some_o express_a law_n of_o god_n or_o two_o because_o it_o make_v we_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n or_o three_o because_o of_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n which_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n have_v take_v to_o their_o bishop_n and_o the_o inferior_a bishop_n to_o their_o archbishop_n or_o last_o because_o as_o one_o of_o our_o adversary_n the_o learned_a vindicator_n contend_v such_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v in_o reality_n no_o bishop_n these_o objection_n i_o shall_v consider_v distinct_o §_o 6._o first_o it_o be_v not_o against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n for_o as_o to_o our_o case_n the_o scripture_n be_v altogether_o silent_a it_o be_v true_a it_o command_v we_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o our_o governor_n and_o that_o command_v reach_n as_o well_o to_o the_o spiritual_a as_o to_o the_o temporal_a but_o when_o there_o be_v two_o that_o stand_v competitor_n and_o both_o claim_v our_o obedience_n to_o which_o of_o those_o two_o our_o obedience_n ought_v to_o be_v pay_v it_o leave_v to_o our_o wisdom_n to_o determine_v §_o 7._o neither_o two_o do_v it_o make_v we_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n for_o if_o a_o landlord_n be_v unjust_o and_o invalid_o dispossess_v of_o his_o estate_n by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n who_o think_v the_o tenant_n a_o accomplice_n in_o the_o injustice_n because_o he_o pay_v his_o rent_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n shall_v the_o clergy_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o bishop_n in_o possession_n it_o can_v only_o serve_v to_o draw_v down_o ruin_n upon_o themselves_o it_o can_v restore_v those_o who_o the_o state_n have_v depose_v it_o be_v not_o our_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n that_o eject_v the_o former_a for_o they_o be_v already_o irretrievable_o depose_v since_o the_o supreme_a power_n be_v peremptory_a against_o '_o they_o that_o have_v public_o declare_v that_o whoever_o be_v our_o bishop_n the_o old_a one_o shall_v govern_v we_o no_o long_o if_o we_o think_v the_o proceed_v unjust_a it_o be_v enough_o that_o we_o remonstrate_v against_o it_o and_o express_v our_o dissatisfaction_n if_o that_o will_v not_o do_v the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a oblige_v we_o to_o be_v quiet_a §_o 8._o neither_o three_o be_v it_o sinful_a on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n for_o that_o be_v take_v not_o absolute_o and_o unconditional_o but_o with_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o we_o take_v it_o have_v power_n to_o govern_v we_o if_o i_o take_v a_o oath_n to_o be_v faithful_a or_o obedient_a to_o a_o governor_n whether_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a i_o engage_v myself_o to_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n that_o be_v as_o one_o that_o can_v govern_v if_o therefore_o he_o can_v no_o long_o govern_v whatsoever_o the_o impediment_n be_v my_o obedience_n be_v no_o long_o engage_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o state_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o oath_n that_o be_v take_v to_o a_o bishop_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o a_o church_n be_v not_o take_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o good_a order_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o the_o church_n when_o she_o order_v such_o a_o oath_n to_o be_v take_v when_o therefore_o the_o oath_n tend_v no_o long_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n but_o notorious_o to_o schism_n disorder_n and_o confusion_n it_o can_v any_o long_o oblige_v but_o be_v void_a of_o itself_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o church_n intent_n and_o design_n in_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o it_o be_v further_a to_o be_v consider_v that_o particular_o here_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n be_v always_o take_v with_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o civil_a power_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a do_v allow_v the_o bishop_n to_o govern_v but_o let_v we_o suppose_v even_o that_o which_o in_o reason_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o suppose_v let_v we_o suppose_v that_o the_o bishop_n intend_v that_o the_o oath_n shall_v always_o oblige_v whatsoever_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n not_o the_o private_a intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o give_v a_o obligation_n to_o the_o oath_n i_o add_v that_o shall_v it_o be_v both_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o likewise_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o person_n who_o take_v the_o oath_n that_o it_o shall_v always_o oblige_v shall_v it_o run_v in_o these_o express_a word_n i_o will_v always_o adhere_v to_o you_o if_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n in_o opposition_n to_o he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o your_o place_n shall_v any_o one_o i_o say_v take_v such_o a_o oath_n as_o that_o yet_o he_o can_v be_v oblige_v by_o it_o the_o oath_n be_v in_o itself_o unlawful_a it_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o public_a repugnant_a to_o the_o will_n and_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v in_o effect_n to_o swear_v thus_o i_o will_v for_o your_o sake_n oppose_v the_o welfare_n
of_o the_o public_a and_o break_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o adhere_v to_o you_o though_o i_o have_v not_o any_o reason_n to_o do_v so_o beside_o this_o bare_a oath_n to_o conclude_v whatsoever_o be_v notorious_o repugnant_a to_o the_o church_n interest_n so_o as_o to_o be_v necessary_o productive_a of_o very_o great_a evil_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v oblige_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sin_n to_o act_v according_a to_o it_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n cease_v if_o a_o bishop_n be_v deprive_v though_o never_o so_o unjust_o by_o a_o synod_n now_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o that_o it_o be_v because_o to_o adhere_v to_o a_o bishop_n when_o a_o synod_n have_v full_o depose_v he_o and_o place_v another_o in_o his_o see_n must_v occasion_v a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o disturb_v the_o public_a if_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n as_o no_o one_o can_v assign_v any_o other_o at_o least_o there_o can_v be_v none_o but_o what_o be_v ground_v on_o that_o then_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o case_n and_o consequent_o in_o both_o case_n though_o oath_n will_v be_v equal_o void_a it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o allege_v that_o in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o synod_n we_o cease_v to_o be_v oblige_v by_o our_o oath_n because_o every_o bishop_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v oblige_v himself_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o synod_n whether_o just_a or_o unjust_a and_o therefore_o when_o a_o synod_n have_v depose_v he_o though_o by_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n his_o place_n be_v true_o void_a by_o virtue_n of_o his_o suppose_a consent_n for_o suppose_v a_o bishop_n shall_v have_v always_o declare_v that_o he_o never_o will_v give_v his_o consent_n that_o a_o synod_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o depose_v he_o by_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n ought_v we_o not_o however_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o new_a constitute_v bishop_n our_o adversary_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v but_o why_o it_o be_v because_o the_o necessity_n of_o government_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o well_o then_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n consent_n but_o necessity_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a that_o make_v our_o oath_n void_a though_o in_o some_o respect_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o what_o be_v do_v by_o a_o competent_a or_o a_o lawful_a authority_n and_o what_o be_v do_v by_o a_o incompetent_a or_o a_o unlawful_a authority_n yet_o as_o to_o our_o acquiescence_n in_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n such_o as_o be_v here_o suppose_a i_o can_v see_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o the_o obligation_n to_o acquiesce_v be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o case_n when_o in_o both_o case_n the_o necessity_n be_v the_o same_o if_o a_o lord_n be_v dispossess_v of_o his_o manor_n by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n that_o can_v be_v resist_v a_o conqueror_n suppose_v or_o a_o unlawful_a court_n who_o think_v the_o tenant_n forswear_v for_o submit_v to_o the_o new_a possessor_n who_o make_v any_o difference_n there_o between_o a_o competent_a and_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n and_o why_o be_v the_o tenant_n in_o such_o a_o case_n not_o forswear_v if_o he_o can_v or_o ought_v not_o to_o oppose_v the_o intruder_n yet_o ought_v he_o not_o at_o least_o to_o give_v up_o his_o estate_n rather_o than_o submit_v and_o do_v homage_n to_o the_o wrong_a lord_n it_o will_v be_v grant_v i_o presume_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o he_o be_v neither_o oblige_v to_o oppose_v the_o intruder_n nor_o yet_o to_o give_v up_o his_o estate_n but_o why_o do_v the_o oath_n which_o he_o take_v to_o the_o rightful_a lord_n cease_v to_o oblige_v he_o it_o be_v because_o when_o he_o take_v the_o oath_n he_o take_v it_o only_o on_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o manor_n the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o public_a and_o the_o good_a of_o tenant_n in_o general_n give_v that_o restriction_n to_o the_o oath_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o frontier_n town_n will_v not_o own_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o conqueror_n and_o be_v therefore_o depose_v by_o that_o conqueror_n i_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o our_o adversary_n whether_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o town_n be_v perjure_v if_o they_o own_o that_o bishop_n who_o the_o conqueror_n think_v fit_a to_o set_v over_o '_o they_o if_o a_o bishop_n shall_v by_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v condemn_v to_o perpetual_a and_o close_a imprisonment_n or_o be_v banish_v forover_n from_o his_o country_n so_o as_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o shall_v he_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_a we_o know_v not_o where_o or_o from_o whence_o we_o can_v redeem_v he_o what_o then_o be_v we_o still_o oblige_v by_o our_o oath_n because_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o no_o synod_n when_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o 3d._n century_n 10._o narcissus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v secret_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o no_o body_n know_v what_o be_v become_v of_o he_o leave_v the_o church_n shall_v be_v without_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o bishop_n there_o be_v present_o a_o new_a one_o ordain_v how_o their_o bishop_n be_v lose_v they_o know_v not_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o he_o be_v go_v and_o do_v not_o any_o long_a officiate_n the_o church_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n can_v be_v without_o a_o bishop_n that_o he_o say_v to_o his_o people_n when_o he_o himself_o be_v to_o be_v carry_v away_o into_o banishment_n and_o on_o that_o account_n he_o advise_v they_o to_o accept_v of_o another_o for_o their_o bishop_n i_o easy_o foresee_v what_o will_v be_v the_o reply_n of_o our_o adversary_n they_o will_v tell_v we_o that_o in_o such_o case_n we_o ought_v to_o presume_v that_o the_o bishop_n give_v his_o consent_n that_o his_o successor_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o therefore_o the_o oath_n do_v no_o long_o oblige_v because_o there_o be_v a_o rational_a presumption_n that_o the_o banish_v the_o imprison_a or_o the_o captive_a bishop_n and_o he_o of_o the_o frontier_n town_n do_v remit_v the_o obligation_n of_o it_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v 1._o it_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v presume_v that_o a_o good_a bishop_n one_o that_o can_v say_v with_o 〈◊〉_d s._n gregory_n then_z bishop_n of_o c_o p._n i_o seek_v not_o you_o but_o you_o will_v ready_o forego_v his_o own_o interest_n for_o the_o welfare_n and_o prosperity_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o since_o our_o eject_v bishop_n who_o be_v i_o be_o full_o persuade_v very_o worthy_a and_o good_a man_n and_o real_a lover_n of_o their_o people_n have_v never_o by_o any_o public_a signification_n of_o their_o will_n lay_v claim_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o their_o people_n and_o do_v not_o now_o exercise_v their_o episcopal_a power_n as_o before_o in_o reason_n we_o ought_v to_o presume_v that_o they_o give_v their_o consent_n that_o their_o successor_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v but_o two_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o out_v governor_n do_v express_o assure_v his_o inferior_n that_o he_o do_v not_o give_v his_o consent_n but_o still_o lay_v claim_n to_o their_o obedience_n suppose_v the_o conquer_a the_o banish_a the_o imprison_a or_o the_o captive_a bishop_n shall_v charge_v his_o people_n express_o upon_o their_o oath_n never_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o other_o bishop_n as_o long_o as_o by_o the_o common_a course_n of_o nature_n he_o himself_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v live_v or_o till_o they_o be_v assure_v he_o be_v dead_a let_v this_o i_o say_v be_v suppose_v and_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v what_o must_v be_v do_v in_o such_o case_n be_v the_o church_n perjure_v if_o she_o accept_v of_o another_o will_v our_o adversary_n say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o hard_a say_v who_o can_v bear_v it_o this_o presumption_n of_o the_o eject_v governor_n consent_n be_v i_o know_v what_o be_v common_o allege_v by_o some_o very_a learned_a and_o otherwise_o judicious_a man_n as_o the_o true_a and_o the_o only_a foundation_n of_o acquiescence_n when_o the_o lawful_a governor_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o a_o power_n incompetent_a but_o that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o true_a and_o the_o only_a foundation_n these_o difficulty_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v do_v i_o think_v abundant_o demonstrate_v other_o man_n i_o must_v leave_v to_o their_o own_o way_n of_o think_v for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o welfare_n and_o prosperity_n of_o mankind_n do_v depend_v upon_o so_o ticklish_a and_o uncertain_a a_o point_n as_o that_o of_o a_o eject_v governor_n consent_n that_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o give_v his_o consent_n all_o the_o church_n or_o the_o
authority_n we_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v that_o his_o deprivation_n will_v have_v be_v look_v upon_o by_o s._n cyprian_a as_o very_o reasonable_a and_o just_a but_o let_v we_o still_o grant_v as_o we_o first_o suppose_v in_o our_o question_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o emperor_n himself_o but_o by_o bishop_n yet_o if_o he_o have_v be_v deprive_v for_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n authority_n or_o if_o he_o have_v be_v upon_o any_o other_o account_n so_o deprive_v by_o the_o imperial_a authority_n as_o that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o exercise_v his_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v it_o possible_a for_o any_o wise_a and_o unprejudiced_a man_n to_o imagine_v that_o s._n cyprian_n will_v have_v think_v so_o ill_o of_o novatian_n and_o his_o adherent_n as_o he_o do_v if_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n suppose_v the_o king_n of_o persia_n shall_v in_o s._n cyprian_n time_n have_v take_v a_o frontier_n city_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n shall_v have_v be_v depose_v by_o he_o for_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o his_o authority_n who_o can_v believe_v that_o that_o great_a and_o wise_a man_n s._n cyprian_a will_v have_v declare_v a_o new_a bishop_n no_o bishop_n and_o all_o his_o adherent_n schismatical_a that_o a_o second_o that_o be_v a_o schismatical_a bishop_n a_o invader_n of_o a_o see_v already_o fill_v and_o possess_v be_v no_o bishop_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v s._n cyprian_n doctrine_n but_o that_o our_o bishop_n be_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o s._n cyprian_n the_o invader_n of_o a_o see_v already_o fill_v and_o possess_v that_o they_o be_v secundi_fw-la in_o his_o sense_n be_v what_o we_o utter_o deny_v not_o a_o word_n not_o a_o hint_n in_o s._n cyprian_n from_o whence_o such_o a_o thing_n can_v be_v infer_v the_o vindicator_n may_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o our_o present_a possessor_n do_v not_o set_v up_o themselves_o in_o opposition_n to_o such_o as_o be_v possess_v of_o their_o see_z but_o before_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v bishop_n their_o predecessor_n be_v make_v by_o the_o supreme_a civil_a power_n uncapable_a of_o govern_v i._n e._n be_v depose_v again_o he_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o our_o present_a possessor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o ambitious_o invade_v like_a novatian_n the_o see_v of_o other_o that_o they_o be_v all_o choose_v by_o their_o respective_a church_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a manner_n viz._n in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o their_o predecessor_n themselves_o have_v be_v let_v we_o hold_v up_o the_o picture_n which_o the_o vindicator_n have_v be_v please_v to_o draw_v to_o a_o true_a light_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v what_o a_o strange_a figure_n it_o be_v the_o vindicator_n enthymeme_n be_v this_o s._n cyprian_n say_v that_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n but_o a_o schismatic_a who_o ambitious_o invade_v a_o see_v which_o another_o be_v full_o possess_v of_o therefore_o s._n cyprian_n think_v that_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n but_o a_o schismatic_a who_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a manner_n into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o the_o civil_a power_n will_v not_o suffer_v to_o govern_v any_o long_o because_o he_o refuse_v to_o own_o its_o authority_n i_o add_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o one_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n than_o it_o likewise_o must_v follow_v that_o he_o be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o depose_v but_o this_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n will_v neither_o himself_o grant_v neither_o do_v he_o i_o suppose_v believe_v that_o s._n cyprian_n think_v so_o i_o say_v that_o must_v follow_v if_o we_o serious_o consider_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o only_a good_a reason_n assignable_a why_o in_o the_o former_a case_n the_o successor_n be_v a_o secundus_fw-la and_o no_o bishop_n be_v this_o because_o the_o predecessor_n have_v still_o a_o right_n to_o the_o bishopric_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o latter_a case_n for_o a_o bishop_n who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o deprive_v have_v still_o as_o much_o right_n to_o his_o bishopric_n as_o a_o bishop_n invalid_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n for_o to_o i_o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o any_o unjust_a sentence_n shall_v take_v away_o the_o right_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o government_n require_v it_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v submit_v to_o such_o a_o sentence_n and_o this_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v be_v the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n when_o a_o bishop_n be_v unjust_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n we_o submit_v to_o his_o successor_n not_o because_o we_o imagine_v that_o the_o other_o have_v no_o long_a a_o right_n but_o only_o for_o peace_n sake_n that_o a_o bishop_n unjust_o deprive_v by_o a_o synod_n have_v still_o a_o right_n to_o that_o bishopric_n as_o well_o as_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n may_v be_v clear_o demonstrate_v from_o this_o that_o after_o he_o be_v deprive_v he_o may_v be_v again_o restore_v and_o his_o successor_n be_v depose_v by_o appeal_n to_o another_o synod_n and_o yet_o the_o eject_v successor_n be_v account_v a_o true_a bishop_n now_o be_v that_o do_v just_o or_o not_o there_o be_v no_o one_o will_v say_v it_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o successor_n shall_v be_v just_o deprive_v if_o the_o other_o have_v no_o right_n to_o conclude_v that_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o deprive_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v a_o real_a and_o true_a bishop_n will_v by_o and_o by_o appear_v by_o the_o opinion_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n in_o general_n let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o as_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o predecessor_n be_v unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o a_o sin_n so_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v liable_a be_v either_o not_o so_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v §_o 10._o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v area_n a_o schism_n and_o a_o persecution_n two_o evil_n as_o great_a as_o can_v possible_o befall_v the_o church_n and_o that_o those_o two_o very_a great_a evil_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o certain_a and_o the_o immediate_a consequence_n of_o a_o non-submission_n be_v too_o evident_a to_o any_o consider_v man_n to_o need_v any_o proof_n if_o the_o ill_a consequence_n to_o which_o a_o submission_n may_v be_v liable_a be_v so_o great_a as_o those_o two_o evil_n but_o not_o so_o certain_a or_o if_o they_o be_v so_o certain_a but_o not_o so_o great_a it_o must_v then_o be_v grant_v that_o with_o respect_n to_o consequence_n a_o submission_n be_v more_o reasonable_a than_o a_o non-submission_n now_o if_o we_o consider_v those_o evil_a consequence_n which_o may_v just_o be_v charge_v upon_o the_o submission_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v both_o so_o great_a and_o so_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v neither_o so_o great_a nor_o so_o certain_a as_o those_o two_o evil_n which_o by_o a_o non-submission_n must_v unavoidable_o be_v bring_v upon_o the_o church_n so_o far_o indeed_o be_v the_o principle_n which_o we_o maintain_v from_o be_v necessary_o attend_v with_o any_o very_a ill_a consequence_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o foresee_v any_o consequence_n at_o all_o that_o be_v evil._n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o comply_v upon_o occasion_n with_o the_o necessity_n of_o time_n so_o if_o ever_o the_o civil_a power_n which_o to_o fear_v in_o this_o reign_n will_v be_v very_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a shall_v pretend_v to_o break_v in_o upon_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o yield_v to_o such_o imposition_n if_o the_o evil_a day_n must_v needs_o some_o which_o god_n forbid_v we_o will_v keep_v it_o off_o as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v when_o it_o necessary_o come_v as_o now_o we_o show_v our_o prudence_n so_o we_o will_v then_o prove_v our_o fortitude_n not_o to_o endeavour_v to_o escape_v from_o damascus_n when_o a_o basket_n be_v fair_o offer_v will_v be_v folly_n in_o a_o apostle_n and_o to_o run_v on_o to_o martyrdom_n when_o it_o honest_o may_v be_v avoid_v be_v according_a to_o the_o sanction_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n a_o sin_n shall_v
a_o person_n absolute_o unqualify_v be_v impose_v upon_o we_o for_o a_o bishop_n we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o accept_v he_o if_o a_o roman_a decius_n will_v depose_v all_o our_o bishop_n and_o not_o permit_v we_o to_o constitute_v other_o in_o their_o place_n that_o so_o he_o may_v destroy_v our_o religion_n we_o be_v not_o then_o to_o regard_v either_o what_o he_o do_v or_o command_v as_o the_o roman_n upon_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o fabian_n though_o to_o avoid_v the_o fury_n of_o a_o persecution_n bishop_n propter_fw-la rerum_fw-la &_o temporum_fw-la difficultates_fw-la we_o may_v possible_o defer_v the_o election_n yet_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o think_v it_o convenient_a we_o will_v choose_v a_o cornelius_n bishop_n notwithstanding_o the_o tyrant_n decree_n if_o a_o heretical_a king_n frazamund_n shall_v command_v we_o not_o to_o ordain_v any_o bishop_n that_o so_o the_o catholic_n religion_n may_v of_o course_n be_v root_v out_o and_o his_o heresy_n only_o prevail_v we_o will_v then_o no_o more_o value_n that_o command_v than_o the_o catholic_n heretofore_o do_v but_o in_o spite_n of_o his_o edict_n will_v get_v as_o many_o bishop_n ordain_v as_o we_o think_v convenient_a for_o the_o church_n but_o how_o can_v our_o case_n be_v compare_v with_o either_o of_o these_o here_o be_v no_o forbid_v election_n no_o depose_n all_o bishop_n in_o general_a no_o impose_v unqualify_v person_n no_o destroy_n of_o religion_n no_o advance_n of_o heresy_n the_o only_a question_n here_o be_v whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n may_v be_v follow_v when_o cephas_n be_v in_o prison_n and_o be_v render_v uncapable_a of_o act_v as_o a_o apostle_n our_o adversary_n be_v resolve_v to_o have_v cephas_n if_o they_o can_v have_v he_o they_o will_v neither_o have_v christ._n to_o we_o it_o be_v altogether_o indifferent_a whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v christ._n there_o be_v only_o one_o inconvenience_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o foresee_v which_o can_v just_o be_v charge_v on_o this_o principle_n which_o we_o advance_v and_o that_o be_v this_o that_o by_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o present_a possessor_n the_o civil_a governor_n be_v like_a to_o be_v encourage_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o church_n and_o to_o turn_v out_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o do_v not_o like_a whensoever_o he_o please_v though_o never_o so_o unjust_o if_o that_o be_v the_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n be_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o government_n by_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o who_o a_o synod_n have_v unjust_o depose_v that_o synod_n may_v be_v possible_o encourage_v to_o turn_v out_o other_o unjust_o as_o many_o as_o it_o do_v not_o like_a though_o never_o so_o worthy_a second_o that_o here_o in_o england_n it_o be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o the_o prince_n that_o can_v turn_v out_o a_o bishop_n he_o have_v all_o the_o same_o security_n that_o another_o subject_n can_v have_v and_o he_o can_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n without_o a_o due_a course_n of_o law_n if_o they_o mean_v that_o the_o king_n and_o t●●_n parliament_n may_v by_o that_o be_v encourage_v to_o depose_v our_o bishop_n at_o ple●●ure_n 〈◊〉_d supposition_n will_v be_v wild_a and_o extravagant_a for_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o they_o can_v ever_o concur_v for_o the_o deprivation_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o upon_o a_o very_a extraordinary_a occasion_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o this_o inconvenience_n be_v not_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o those_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v these_o be_v certain_a and_o present_a that_o only_o possible_a but_o three_o shall_v we_o grant_v what_o in_o reason_n can_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v as_o likely_a to_o happen_v yet_o how_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n shall_v the_o state_n here_o or_o in_o other_o country_n one_o single_a absolute_a governor_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v so_o very_o dissolute_a as_o to_o turn_v out_o frequent_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n yet_o who_o can_v look_v upon_o that_o mischief_n to_o be_v comparable_a to_o that_o of_o a_o schism_n and_o a●_n persecution_n what_o can_v the_o suffering_n of_o a_o few_o particular_a man_n be_v when_o compare_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n beside_o our_o adversary_n may_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o bishop_n that_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v but_o the_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o bishop_n be_v these_o or_o those_o man_n much_o less_o of_o some_o few_o particular_a bishop_n but_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o general_a that_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v §_o 11._o and_o thus_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v sufficient_o make_v out_o what_o i_o propose_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o submit_v to_o a_o bishop_n who_o be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o another_o unjust_o depose_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v neither_o in_o itself_o a_o sin_n nor_o liable_a to_o ill_a consequence_n so_o likely_a to_o happen_v as_o the_o evil_n we_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v or_o if_o so_o likely_a to_o happen_v not_o so_o great_a and_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n as_o those_o be_v from_o whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o such_o a_o submission_n be_v in_o itself_o high_o reasonable_a which_o be_v the_o first_o proposition_n we_o propose_v to_o be_v demonstrate_v i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o general_n propose_v to_o be_v make_v out_o that_o such_o a_o submission_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_n §_o 12._o but_o before_o i_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o chapter_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o last_o proposition_n there_o remain_v yet_o one_o thing_n more_o to_o be_v consider_v and_o that_o be_v the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n which_o the_o learned_a vindicator_n be_v please_v to_o fix_v upon_o we_o any_o opinion_n say_v the_o vindicator_n on_o account_n of_o which_o man_n separate_v from_o their_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v heretical_a though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n so_o and_o such_o a_o opinion_n be_v not_o heretical_a only_o when_o man_n design_o separate_v from_o other_o on_o that_o very_a account_n because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o that_o opinion_n but_o also_o when_o they_o venture_v on_o such_o practice_n on_o account_n of_o that_o opinion_n wherein_o other_o can_v communicate_v with_o they_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o they_o can_v join_v with_o they_o in_o that_o opinion_n then_o plain_o the_o differ_v in_o such_o opinion_n make_v a_o difference_n of_o communion_n unavoidable_a and_o therefore_o the_o opinion_n themselves_o in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o this_o be_v be_v signal_n of_o different_a communion_n which_o will_v come_v under_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n that_o the_o civil_a power_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n for_o a_o political_a crime_n or_o if_o it_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n when_o once_o it_o have_v depose_v a_o bishop_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o acknowledge_v the_o successor_n and_o in_o consequence_n of_o that_o opinion_n submit_v now_o to_o the_o present_a possessor_n be_v therefore_o heretic_n because_o he_o and_o his_o party_n can_v join_v with_o we_o in_o that_o practice_n as_o be_v of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n here_o it_o come_v into_o my_o mind_n what_o s._n jerom_n somewhere_o say_v that_o he_o that_o can_v with_o patience_n hear_v himself_o call_v heretic_n be_v no_o good_a christian._n this_o be_v true_a of_o those_o heresy_n which_o be_v so_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_n but_o in_o this_o case_n we_o dare_v to_o be_v patient_a ego_fw-la tibi_fw-la haereticus_fw-la tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la that_o be_v all_o the_o return_v we_o shall_v make_v the_o vindicator_n in_o consequence_n of_o his_o opinion_n that_o the_o civil_a authority_n have_v no_o power_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n and_o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n be_v so_o depose_v his_o successor_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o worthy_a adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v and_o disow_v those_o that_o be_v put_v into_o their_o place_n in_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o vindicator_n we_o can_v join_v with_o he_o and_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o opinion_n and_o what_o now_o follow_v from_o our_o author_n notion_n of_o heresy_n but_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o heretic_n it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n but_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n i_o shall_v here_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o add_v with_o a_o
pace_n maximi_fw-la ●iri_fw-la that_o this_o notion_n of_o heresy_n be_v a_o groundless_a and_o a_o fancyfull_a notion_n that_o he_o may_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o heretic_n who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v not_o of_o his_o opinion_n though_o the_o opinion_n be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n heretical_a i_o grant_v for_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v not_o sinful_a on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o opinion_n maintain_v but_o only_o because_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n but_o this_o i_o assert_v in_o opposition_n to_o what_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o the_o vindicator_n that_o to_o all_o heresy_n as_o the_o word_n be_v strict_o take_v to_o denote_v a_o sin_n contradistinct_a to_o schism_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n maintain_v which_o either_o the_o church_n condemn_v or_o for_o which_o the_o person_n that_o maintain_v it_o do_v of_o himself_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o opinion_n that_o the_o vindicator_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n but_o only_o for_o what_o be_v do_v by_o the_o church_n he_o can_v be_v call_v in_o a_o strict_a sense_n a_o heretic_n but_o only_o a_o schismatic_a §_o 13._o but_o to_o wave_v this_o dispute_n as_o not_o at_o all_o material_a and_o to_o suffer_v the_o vindicator_n if_o he_o please_v to_o enjoy_v his_o notion_n what_o now_o be_v the_o use_v he_o will_v make_v of_o it_o what_o be_v his_o design_n in_o advance_v it_o the_o use_v he_o make_v of_o it_o be_v this_o he_o allege_n the_o aforesaid_a heresy_n as_o a_o reason_n for_o their_o separation_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n they_o ought_v by_o our_o own_o concession_n to_o keep_v off_o from_o our_o communion_n because_o we_o ourselves_o acknowledge_v that_o heresy_n be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n though_o we_o shall_v admit_v say_v he_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o baroccian_a treatise_n have_v be_v successful_a in_o all_o that_o he_o have_v attempt_v we_o may_v yet_o justify_v our_o adherence_n to_o the_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o our_o separation_n from_o our_o adversary_n opposite_a altar_n and_o justify_v it_o too_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o author_n for_o even_o he_o permit_v a_o separation_n where_o orthodoxy_n be_v concern_v and_o express_o except_v this_o case_n from_o the_o number_n of_o those_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o confute_v a_o heretical_a bishop_n he_o call_v a_o false_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v strange_a that_o the_o worthy_a and_o learned_a vindicator_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o out_o in_o his_o logic_n as_o not_o to_o see_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o what_o he_o allege_n and_o to_o offer_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n for_o their_o not_o communicate_v with_o we_o if_o it_o be_v their_o not_o communicate_v with_o we_o that_o make_v our_o opinion_n heretical_a and_o we_o heretic_n how_o do_v they_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o for_o this_o reason_n because_o we_o be_v heretic_n we_o can_v not_o be_v heretic_n according_a to_o the_o vindicator_n own_o notion_n till_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o so_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v first_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n rash_o and_o then_o to_o hunt_v for_o a_o reason_n if_o this_o plea_n of_o our_o author_n be_v good_a i_o will_v very_o fain_o know_v how_o any_o separation_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v unlawful_a let_v our_o author_n stand_v out_o a_o little_a and_o dispute_v with_o our_o old_a dissenter_n he_o ask_v a_o dissenter_n why_o he_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n the_o dissenter_n tell_v he_o it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n be_v heretical_a but_o why_o heretical_a because_o she_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o oblige_v her_o member_n to_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n and_o pursuant_n to_o that_o opinion_n she_o actual_o impose_v the_o use_n of_o '_o they_o in_o the_o use_n of_o these_o ceremony_n say_v the_o dissenter_n we_o can_v join_v with_o you_o and_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o you_o in_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o impose_v upon_o its_o member_n the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n and_o because_o we_o can_v join_v with_o the_o church_n in_o this_o opinion_n and_o practice_n upon_o that_o very_a account_n the_o church_n be_v heretical_a thus_o according_a to_o our_o author_n be_v own_o plea_n but_o the_o plea_n will_v be_v vain_a and_o illogical_a §_o 14._o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o we_o be_v not_o only_a heretic_n upon_o that_o account_n but_o as_o the_o vindicator_n contend_v we_o be_v heretic_n likewise_o as_o heresy_n signify_v a_o err_a even_o in_o fundamental_o he_o affirm_v that_o our_o opinion_n be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n because_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v utter_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n distinct_a from_o the_o state_n to_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n that_o for_o political_a crime_n a_o bishop_n may_v be_v lawful_o deprive_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n or_o this_o that_o suppose_v he_o can_v be_v lawful_o so_o deprive_v yet_o if_o he_o be_v deprive_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o peace-sake_n to_o submit_v to_o his_o successor_n how_o that_o be_v destructive_a of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v perceive_v to_o i_o it_o be_v much_o more_o apparent_a that_o to_o advance_v this_o opinion_n that_o a_o bishop_n can_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o civil_a authority_n for_o any_o crime_n whatsoever_o be_v destructive_a of_o all_o civil_a government_n which_o as_o well_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a be_v of_o god_n institution_n he_o therefore_o that_o advance_v that_o notion_n advance_v a_o very_a dangerous_a notion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o my_o business_n at_o present_a to_o engage_v in_o these_o disquisition_n i_o shall_v only_o make_v bold_a to_o ask_v the_o vindicator_n a_o few_o question_n if_o he_o think_v that_o opinion_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n a_o fundamental_a heresy_n and_o enough_o to_o justify_v the_o present_a separation_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o opinion_n before_o this_o time_n i_o will_v ask_v he_o one_o question_n more_o if_o the_o late_a bishop_n shall_v be_v again_o restore_v will_v he_o then_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o advance_v that_o opinion_n if_o he_o will_v not_o than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v that_o enough_o to_o justify_v the_o present_a separation_n one_o more_o and_o then_o i_o have_v do_v i_o desire_v to_o know_v if_o our_o author_n know_v none_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n who_o themselves_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o supreme_a civil_a governor_n to_o depose_v a_o bishop_n for_o political_a crime_n it_o be_v strange_a if_o he_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o every_o body_n know_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o father_n themselves_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o opinion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v all_o along_o to_o this_o time_n account_v orthodox_n though_o the_o vindicator_n be_v please_v to_o declare_v it_o a_o heresy_n but_o enough_o and_o too_o much_o of_o these_o matter_n we_o will_v leave_v our_o much_o honour_a adversary_n to_o invent_v some_o other_o new_a notion_n more_o consistent_a and_o more_o useful_a for_o his_o cause_n and_o will_v now_o proceed_v to_o inquire_v how_o heretical_a our_o forefather_n be_v in_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o adhere_v to_o the_o present_a possessor_n and_o in_o act_v according_o according_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o treatise_n out_o of_o eccles_n history_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o preface_n preface_n s._n cypr._n ep._n 55._o ad_fw-la anton._n ergo_fw-la ille_fw-la evangelii_n vindex_fw-la ignorabat_fw-la unum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la esse_fw-la oportere_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la catholicâ_fw-la say_v cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o fabius_n of_o antioch_n ap._n euseb._n hist._n l._n 6._o c._n 43._o concern_v novatian_n to_o have_v two_o bishop_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o city_n be_v adversum_fw-la fas_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la singularis_fw-la say_v pacianus_n epist._n 3._o ad_fw-la sympronianum_fw-la novatianum_fw-la novatianum_fw-la collat._n carthag_a 1._o c._n 16._o 16._o theodoret_n hist._n eccl._n l._n 5._o c._n 3._o 3._o and_o by_o the_o synod_n of_o sirmium_n to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o case_n of_o felix_n and_o liberius_n as_o sozomen_n say_v l._n 4._o c._n 15._o but_o that_o synod_n not_o be_v not_o orthodox_n but_o arian_n arian_n gr●g_v turon_n hist._n l._n 10._o c._n 31._o 31._o can._n 4._o 4._o can._n 6._o